"c-
•^' . . . .
'K
-%.',
-V"
^^
k\' .r.
.-^•^'
-%..
-\/\
>v " r
N^'
8 1 A * V V
. , . -^ ^A
^^^ v^^
0'' -o
^ ^ ^ * / ''^c-
. -u
,^
.0 o.
8^
fi TRI WEEKirPUBLlCATIOh/ OF THE BEST CURR£M^ & STANDARD L1TER?VTU1
^
Vo]. 10. No. 513. Feb. 14, 18S5. Annual Subscription, $3U.ii
MEN, WOMEN,
AND
LOVERS
BY
EDITH SIMCOX
Entered at the Post Office, N. Y., as second-class matter.
Copyright, 1885, by John W.Lovell Co.
NEW-YORK I ■ z. ;•■ J , "'J.:=- =.-■:. - - ' -g ssssss
+ JOHN-W-LOVELL- COMPANY +
ft neat CLOTH BISDIHG for this volume can be obtained from anv bookseller or newsdealer, orice IS
Latest Issues of Loveirs Library,
2To Sketches by Boz 20
274 AOhristmas Carol, etc.. 15
2r5 1)116 Stewart 20
2 It) li,iroliU2 Parts, eac .... lo
2r7 Don Thome 20
273 Miiii of Athens 20
279 (Jonqnest of Spam 10
280 FitzDooJle Papers, etc.. 10
281 Bracsbrid^e Hali 20
2s2 UiKJomtn'.^rci'il Traveller. 20
28:5 lioundaoout Ptxpers 20
281 llossinoyne a-,-.----- ?S
2.sr) A Le.send of the Rhine. . 10
286 Cox's Dairy, etc 10
287 Beyond Pardon 20
288 Somebody's Luggage, etc 1 )
28J Godolphin 20
290 Salmagundi 20
291 Famous Funny Fellows. . 20
293 Irish Sketches, etc 20
293 The Battle of Life. ecc... 10
2.>4 Pilgrims of the Rhine... 15
2;)5 Random Shots 20
29Ten's Wives 10
297 Mystery of Edwin Drood 20
298 Reprinted Pieces 20
2J9 Astoria 20
300 Novels by Eminent Hanas 10
301 Companions oi: Columbus 20
393 No '1 horoushfare 10
303 Character Sketches, etc.. 10
sot Chrifitm is Books 2")
305 A Tour on the Prairies. . 10
306 Ballads 15
307 YcUowpUish Papers 10
303 Life of Ma.homot. Part I. lo
Life of Mahomet, Pt. II. 15
309 Sketches and Travels in
L iudon \2
310 Oliver aoldsmith, Irving 20
311 Captain Bonneville 20
312 Golden Girls 20
313 English Humorists 1 ■)
3U Moorish Chronicles l '
315 Winifred Power '-'>
31!) Great Hoggarty Diamond 10
317 Pauaanias 15
318 The New Abelard 20
319 A Real Queen 2'
320 The Rose ^md the Ring.. 20
331 Wolferts Roost : and Mis-
cellanies, by Irving.... 10
322 Mark Seav/orth 2')
323 Life of Paul Jones 20
321 Round the World 'iO
335 Elbow Room 20
326 The Wizard's Son 25
327 Harry Lorrequcr 20
328 How "it All Came Round. 20
329 Dante Rosetti's Poems. . . 20
330 The Canon's Ward 20
331 Lucile, byO. Meredith.. 20
333 Every Day Cook BDok. . . 20
333 Lays of A 'cienb Rome.. 2.)
334 Life of Burns 20
3;55 The Young Foresters.... 20
336 John Bull and His Island 20
337 Salt Water, by Kingston. 29
338 The Midhhipnian 20
aj9 Proctors Po ms 20
310 Clayton Rangers 20
341 Schiller's Poems 30
342 (Toethe's Faust 30
343 Gof the"s Poems 20
344 Life of Thackeray 10
S45 Dante's Vision of Hell,
Purgatory and I'aradise 20
346 An Interesting Case 20
347 Life of Byron, Nichol 10
348 Life of Bunyan 10
349 Valerie's Fate 10
350 Grandfather Lickshintrle 20
851 Lays of the Scottish Ca-
valiers 20
S52 Willis' Poems 20
853 Tales of the French Re-
volution 15
3'4 LoouiaiKlLuirgcr., .... 20
S.)5 More Leaves from a Lif
in the Highlands V.i
355 Hygiene of the Brain.. . . 25
35T Berkeley the Manker 20
358 Homes Abroad IJ
359 Scoit's Lady of the Lake,
with note-i 20
360 Modern Christianity a
Civilized Heathenism. . 15
6\5Z Goldsmith's Plays; and
361 Life of Sheliey 10
I'S Pi
Poems
363 For Each and for All 15
364 Life of Scott 10
365 The Pathfinder 20
366 The Sergeant's Lesracy.. 20
367 An Old Man's Love 15
368 Oil Lady Mary 10
369 Life of Hume 10
370 Twice-Told Tales 20
371 The Story of Chinese
Gordon. A. E. Hake. . . 20
612 Hill and Valley 15
373 Essays, by Emerson 20
371 Essays, by George Eliot. . 20
375 Science at Home 20
376 Gnindfai^hcr's Chair 20
377 Life of Defoe 10
373 H omeward Bound 20
370 The Charmed Sea 15
3H0 Life of Locke 10
381 A Fair Device 20
3S3 Thadde sof Warsaw.... 20
883 Life of Gibbon IC
.^34 Dorothy Forster 20
•.Wy Swiss Family Robinson.. 26
386 Childhood of the World. . 10
3S7 Princess Nanraxii e 25
:!^3 Life in the Wilds 15
^ I Paradise Lost 20
;■) I'he Land Question 10
i.JL Homer's Odyssey 20
?'ii Life of Milton 10
893 Social Prob.ems 20
3 J I T he Giant's Robe 20
395 Sowers not Reapers 15
396 Humor's Iliad 30
397 Arabian Nights' Enter-
tainments 25
308 Lifeof Pope 10
309 John Holds worth 20
!00 Glen of the Echoes 15
401 Li t'e of Johnson 10
402 How he Reached the
White House 25
403 Poems, by E. A. Poe 20
404 Lifeof Southey 10
405 Life of J. G. Blaine 20
406 Pole on Whist. . . .■ 15
407 Lifeof Burke 10
408 TheBnertield Tragedy.. 20
409 Adrift with a Ventreance 25
410 Life of Wxirdsworth 10
4U Children of the Abbey. . . 30
U3 Poems, by Swinburne.... 20
413 Lifeof Chaucer 10
414 Over the Summeni^ea... 20
415 A Perilous Secret 20
416 Lalla Rookh, by Moore.. 20
417 Don QuLXOte 30
418 " I Say No," by Collins. . 20
419 Andersen's Fairy Tales. . 20
430 A Broken Wedding- Ring 20
421 Aurora Leigh 20
4^3 Cavendish Card Essays. . 15
133 Repented at Leisure 20
434 Lifeof Cowper, Smith... 10
425 Self-Help, by Smiles 25
4'^') Narrative of A. Gordon
Pym 15
427 Life of Grover Cleveland
428 Robinson Crusoe
439 ■ ;Hlled Back, by (,;onway.
430 Burns' I'uem>
4.;i Lifeof Si)fiiM'r
4:33 The Golo Bug. by Pop...
4:33 Wrei:ks i>- the Sea of Life
134 I'y phaines A bbey
4;i5 .Miss Tommy, by Mulock.
IS The Light of Asia
437 Tales of Two Idle Ap-
l)rentices
433 The Assignation & Other
Tale.s, by E A. Poe....
439 Noctes Anibrosianse
410 History of the Mormons.
441 Home as Found i
442 Taine's English Litera-
ture
443 Bryant's Poems
414 An Ishmaelite
445 The Rival Doctors, by
Lapointe ....'
446 Tennyson's Poems ;
447 The Murder in the Rue-":
Morgue and Other Taiesf;
448 Life of Fredrika Bremer/
4 19 Qulsi Sana .;
450 Whittier's Poems '
451 Doris, by The Duchess. .
452 M ystic l^ondon
453 Black Poodle an I Other;
Tales, by F. Anstey !
454 The Golden Dog ■;
4.10 Pe.irls of the Fa th -.
456 .ludith Shakespeare I
457 Pi'jic's Poems
458 Sunshine and Roses ,'
459 John Bull and His Diiug .,'
ter.-, by Max O Rell '
460 GaLiski. by Bayne .;
46L Socialism ;
463 Dark Dnys '
463 Deerslayer, by Cooper...
464 Two years oefore the
Mast, by R. H. Dana, Jr.
465 Ean's Atonement
466 Under the Will, by Hay..
4ij7 Prairie, by Cooper
4!;8 -The Count of Talavera..
46 J Chase, by Lermina
470 Vi<;, by A. Benrimo '
471 Pioneer, by Cooper
472 Indian Sons of Songs....
473 Christmas S^torif s
474 A Woman's Temntation.:
475 Sheep m Wolf's Clothing.
416 Love Works Wonders
477 A Week in Killarney
478 Tai-tarinof Tarascon....,
479 Mrs. Browning's Poems J
480 Ahce's Adventures I
481 Through the Lookingj
Glass, by Lewis Carroll
482 Longfellow's Poems |
48:3 The Child Hunters
484 The T vvo Admirals ,
485 My Roses, by French ...
486 History of the French
Revolution. \ol. I.. ,
436 History of the KrencJ
Revolution. VoLII...
487 Moore's Poems
488 Water Witch
489 Bride of Lammermoor. . .
490 Black Dwarf
491 Red Rover
493 Castle Dangerous
493 Legend of Montrose
494 Past and Present
495 Surgeon's Daughter
496 Woman's Trials
497 Sesame and Lilies
49b Drydeu's Poems
MEN, WOMEN
LOVERS
EDITH SIMCOX
FIRST AMERICAN
^ FRO^LIHi^ LAST LONDON EDITION
^'
^y
^m^^0^
NEW YORK
JOHN W. LOVELL COMPANY
14 ^ND 16 Vesey Street
4
TROW'S
PRINTING AND BOOKBINDING COMWJf/,
NEW YORK.
CONTENTS.
■^ PAGE
In Memoriam . . . . *• • • . 9
I.
Consolations ....•••• 23
II.
A Diptych 51
III.
^' Some One had Blundered" . , , . 87
IV.
Midsummer Noon 1 11
V.
At Anchor ........ 129
VI.
Men our Brothers ...... 145
lO IN MEMORIAM,
Johnny promptly began a caricature of me in the
act of dedication. Those were happy days ; and
now that they are gone forever, the memory of this
conversation emboldens me to preface the " fables
and allegories " of the master's friends by a word or
two of humble prose in memory of himself.
We — I mean his guests — used sometimes to
agree among ourselves that, charming as his clever-
ness, readiness arid kindness must have made him
anywhere, he could nowhere have been seen to such
advantage as in his own island ; and I used to think
that it was one chief proof of his wisdom to have
chosen from the first a life so unlike other people's
and so well suited to himself, because there was
nothing about it that did not admit of being done
perfectly — at all events, while he was there to do
it.
I believe he was nearly five-and-thirty when he
came to the island. I know nothing about his life
before that date ; and though old friends who did,
used to come and stay with him, neither he nor they
ever spoke, except incidentally, of those earlier
days. The island is in British waters, but some
hours' sail from the neighboring continent of Great
Britain. The freehold or lordship, that goes by an
archaic name (which I have forgotten), was in the
market, and he bought it for a few thousand
pounds. For years there had been no wealthy
resident owner. The natives were farming fisher-
^ IN MEMORIAM. II
men or fishing farmers, with some surliness of
mind and manners which we took to be a relic
from old smuggling days, when a revenue cutter
was the only strange craft ever seen among the sunk
rocks and dangerous races which force even the
islanders to keep a watchful eye on winds and tides.
The estate was to be had cheap, all the more so
because the last lord of the isle had met an ugly
fate. He was engaged to be married, and had come
to the island with a friend for a fortnight's shooting,
while his betrothed was absorbed in the last anxious
business of the trousseau. The island women say
ishe was to have had a ball-dress trimmed with sea-
birds' feathers that he had shot for her. Just when
he was to have started home, a spell of furiously bad
weather set in, and from day to day the boatmen
refused to put to sea, saying no boat could live.
The young man was in despair. He had written
to announce his coming, and no letter or message
could pass to explain his delay.
At last one morning the wind sank for a little,
and against the advice of the old men three sailors
were bribed to get out their boat and try to take the
two Englishmen to the mainland. The boat got out
to sea, but in an hour's time the gale redoubled, the
wind was right astern ; the boat was seen scudding
along under a single jib, and in the open sea all
might have gone well even yet ; but between the
island and the coast there is half a mile of broken
I? IN MEManiAM.
water, part sand-bank, part sunken reef, with a few
jagged rocks showing through the spray two or
three rough lumps like dwarf martello towers, and
one bare island white with sea-gulls.
Except at high tide in smooth weather there are
only two passages along the whole half-mile, and
with the wind that blew, it would have been madness
to try to coast round outside the dangerous reach.
The only chance — those who watched the end all
agreed that the lost boat was handled as well as boat
could be in such a storm — the only chance was for
the boat to run straight before the wind and shoot
the middle channel in its course. Ten minutes
later and this too might have been done : at flood
tide a current runs through this channel with a
strength of seven miles an hour. The sailors had
calculated to a moment the time for reaching the
passage when the current was slackest for the ebb,
but the fury of the gale had put out their reckoning ;
under bare poles they had been swept along faster
than good sailing speed, and they were at the edge
of the surf ten minutes too soon.
An old, old man, father of one of the sailors who
was lost, has told me the rest of the story as if he
had been on board himself. Ten minutes sooner or
later a man who knows his boat can face even this
current if the weather is but ordinarily rough, but
now there was a raging gale, and the wind was
blowing against the tide. The old father said this
IN MEMORIAM. 13
as if it ended the story. A fiercer gust than ever
bore the boat into the channel, bore back for a
moment the force of the current, then there was a
lull of wind, a rush of water, two men clung with
all their force to the rudder, but the boat's head had
swerved. As if the fiends of air and ocean had
joined hands, the wind caught the wavering sail and
drove the stout boat forward sideways, while the
sullen current surging on the beam thrust her back-
w^ards, helpless, athwart the channel. There was
but a moment for those who understood what was
happening to look their death in the face. Tossed
by the wind, she shipped a heavy sea ; the water-
logged hull was swept backwards, almost on her
beam ends, by the current, to the mouth of the
channel, and then by one fierce wave lifted up and
dashed upon the rocks.
For three years house and land stood ownerless
and empty. It was like my friend that as soon as
he heard this story he paid to the family of each of
the three sailors drowned the full sum for which
they had been tempted to put to sea. This is nearly
thirty years ago, but traditions keep fresh in the
island, and perhaps the memory of this wreck is all
the greener because there has been no life lost at sea
near the island since. One boat was wrecked in a
fog upon a rock just outside the little harbor, but
as the boat shivered, the two sailors on board heard
the rattle of the chains that were fixed in the rock
14 IN MEMORIAM.
three winters before in view of just such a contin-
gency, and clambered into safety by their help. At
daybreak they were fetched ashore in the little life-
boat, which, like the clanking clains, had been laughed
at often enough by the sages of the beach as a lands-
man's whim, and from that day onward no whim of
the master, as they had learnt to call him, was ever
laughed at, however little it might be understood.
The cottagers' faith grew into a convenient supersti-
tion, and because he often knew what would, and
almost always what might happen, they came to
him as an oracle, and followed his counsel without
question, when, perhaps, if they had known his
reasons, they would have ventured to prefer their
own prejudices.
It was in this way, rather as a trusted authority
than as a teacher of new-fangled sciences, that he
got new methods of cultivation adopted by the peo-
ple, and was able to watch the productiveness of
the island slowly doubling before his eyes. Old
customs of joint harvesting and winter gatherings for
work and gossip, which were on the point of dying
out, were revived under his influence with a differ-
ence which made them look like a forecast of the
most enlightened modern notions about co-operative
labor and sociability. He spent little money in the
island ; that, he knew, was apt to go to fill the spirit
keg in the boat's locker ; but he had inexhaustible
devices for bringing about a friendly exchange of
IN MEMORIA M. 1 5
properties which left the other party richer, and yet
well pleased at having obliged the master.
It was he who launched the widows and grand-
mothers — for the sea had left a considerable " surplus
female population" — in a homely domestic woollen
trade of spinning and knitting : the knitting did so
well that it was scarcely worth while to weave.
Before his day the lone women would starve and
struggle upon the tiny patch of ground they were
too poor and weak to till to profit. The neighbors
were kind enough, and if the poor soul broke down,
would dig and plant for her without reward ; but
the fruit was little at best till the winter's knitting
came to help. Then it seemed to arrange itself that
each of these women should knit first for one of the
largest farmers' families, and that in return her little
plot should share with their own land at plough-
time and harvest, and when the boats brought in
their load of sea-weed for manure. We used to
notice with pleasure that if there was any little bit
of agricultural coquetry the men didn't half believe
in for themselves, but thought the master liked, they
always gave the widows' fields the benefit of it ; and
what with this and the women's own work, weeding
and hoeing through the summer, the prime crop of
the season always came off one of these lots that
used to be so forlorn.
One of the first things that struck me in explormg
the island was, that wherever one wanted to go, a
l6 IN MEMORIAM.
pretty natural path seemed to lead just there and
nowhere else. There was only one real road, across
the shoulder of the island, past the church and the
mill and the castle, from the sheltered harbor with
its stone breakwater, to the open beach where boats
could anchor in summer. From this main road a
dry shady lane or open grass alley led to each single
homestead or cottage, and paths led on again from
each dwelling to the owner's plot of field or com-
mon ; but the divisions always led down to the cliff
edge, so that in old times there was no such thing
as a cliff path leading round the island. Here and
there a plainly marked path tempted the explorer,
and would lead more or less precipitously straight
down to the water's edge, where stone was quarried
for ballast or sea-weed landed for manure ; but the
idle stroller, wishing to pass from one such ascent
to the next, had to retrace his steps to the high land,
or vault over half a dozen primitive boundary walls,
compact with granite, gorse, ditch and thorn. The
first winter after his arrival, the master set himself
to buy privately, one by one, for some little favor
or help in kind, the consent of each small proprie-
tor to open a footway for the castle guests ; no path
was made, but just where the hedge or natural
obstacle had been, a rough stile or slab of stone
opened or bridged the way ; and as the cottagers
learnt to cross each other's plots and found the new
TN MEMORIAM. if
paths handy, a new kind of neighborliness grew up
among them.
When I knew him, the master's habits were as
fixed as the seasons. In May he came to London
for a month or so, and then was sometimes to be
pei-suaded to pay a short visit to one or two old
friends ; but before July he was in the island again,
and through July, August and September, the castle
was filled and refilled with contented guests. His
invitations were to a dozen people for a month, and
at first I think some tried to come and go as they
pleased, but in time we got to look upon it as a kind
of treason to the host and the company not to leave
and arrive in the fashion planned for us. Indeed,
sonpe of us liked the island so well we should
scarcely have been prompt to leave it at a month's
end but for the thought of another group waiting to
enter on the reversion of our pleasures.
By October the last set of visitors had come and
gone, and the master was alone with his people and
his books. His intercourse with the latter resulted
in the production, at longish intervals, of mono-
graphs that were the delight of the societies whose
transactions they enriched. Few men have written
so many of these short and hidden classics. He
used to say that every subject he cared about was
too large or too small to have a good book written
about it ; and we felt that it would be out of char-
acter for him to write anything but i/ie book on any
l8 IJV MBMORIAM.
subject. As it was, all that he wrote was perfect
in form as well as notable in substance. He had the
art of summing up in a few sentences all the pre-
liminary knowledge required for understanding his
argument, and then facts from all quarters were
marshalled in what seemed a self-evident order to
the support of a neat and novel proposition, so
apparently self-evident that one wondered why it
had never been clearly enunciated before.
For six months he lived his own life thus and was
much alone. Sometimes in the spring he was lost
sight of for a while, and sometimes encountered in
queer corners of the world, sometimes bent on what
were thought quixotic schemes of benevolence,
sometimes on what were unwisely wild and rash
adventures. As he grew older the latter kind of
escapades became less frequent, and he was less
averse to owning the past follies he had committed.
He said every one must let off their steam some-
how ; for some people it is done involuntarily, —
intense pain or pleasure swallow up all the surplus
energies ; others again have no surplus, but the rest
must either risk explosion or let off an unearthly
shriek at times.
Naturally many wondered why such a man had
never married, and were slow to believe he never
would. Only once in my hearing was he induced
to give any approach to a serious answer to urgency
on this point, and then it was by a quotation from
IN MEMORIAM. 19
Chamfort : " Quand je songe que, pour me marier,
il faudrait que j'aimasse, il me parait, non pas im-
possible, mais difficile que je me marie ; mais quand
je songe qu'il faudrait que j'aimasse et que je fusse
aim^, alors je crois qu'il est impossible que je me
marie." One lady had the courage to protest she
thought he need have no modest fear, and then
affected to run over her friends in thought, and con-
cluded that she could produce seven who, in a
month's time, would love him, if he would let them,
quite well enough ; whereto he said that people had
different ideas about what was " enough."
His quotation from Chamfort sent me to that
author, where I found another sentence : " J'ai re-
nonc^ a I'amitie de deux hommes ; I'un parcequ'il
ne m'a jamais parle de lui ; I'autre parcequ'il ne
m'a jamais parle de moi." The master, it must be
confessed, spoke little of himself, and always, as it
seemed to me, with a slight effort or reluctance,
but still he did not entirely withhold that due of
friendship, and hence no one suspected any mixture
of motive in the visible readiness with which he
turned to the other indispensable subject of his
friend's 7noi. But he was entirely free from the
vexatious arrogance which is just as fatal to friend-
ship as either of Chamfort's omissions — the air of
being interested in his friends' affairs for their sake
and not for his own. However freely one acknowl-
edged and felt his superiority, still it always seemed
20 IN ME MORI AM.
as if he really wanted and would have felt the ab-
sence of that little something that each one had to
contribute to his entourage ; and as marriage might
have interfered with his enjoyment of, or at least
his dependence upon, these miscellaneous contribu-
tions, I for one was well content to let all stay as it
was.
Sometimes even in the summer months, and
oftener as autumn came near, we had continuous
days of rough weather with gales of wind and rain
that made cliffing a mad risk and any outdoor sport
impossible. It was then that the master shone most
brilliantly as a host ; some provision was made for
every one's amusement, and no one watched the sky
dismally longing for a change of weather. But one
entertainment had a certain veil of mystery about
it. A select few, invited none of the rest quite
knew upon what principle, used to disappear to-
gether for one long morning with the master him-
self into the most private room of the whole castle,
a sort of boudoir leading out of his study on the
farther side, and after this morning it was observed
that first one and then another member of the mys-
terious circle was wont to disappear for hours, and
no jesting inquiries could ever prevail with the ini-
tiated to reveal the secret of these absences.
At last the hour of initiation dawned for me. It
was seven years after I had seen him first, and then
I understood that it was only friends of seven years'
IN MEMORIAM. 21
standing who were privileged to join the secret con-
clave. I believe the whim dated from one storm^i
October, not long after he had taken possession of
the island ; other visitors had gone, and there were
only four or five old friends left together. He pro-
posed, half to pass the days, and half, he told me,
wishing for a sotivenzr of old times, that they should
each write in a big blank book of his some episode
of real experience — the description of a scene, a
moment, a feeling, a reflection, something that
should be the more entirely their own because of
the remoteness of such veiled confessions from the
intercourse of ordinary life. Gradually it grew into
a custom that old friends each year might read, and
if they pleased, add to the growing collection of
these fragmentary scenes. The writers of some
have already gone over to the majority, and with the
tacit permission of their "true author and begetter,"
our lost, best friend, these are now printed
3In fHem0riam»
ans^Ialtoits*
Joys like winged dreams fly fast :
Why should sadiicss longer last?
• Fletcher.
I HAVE heard of a man who took to drinking be-
cause when he recovered from diphtheria he
found his wife and two children had died of it. He
was hardly to blame. An intense depression attends
the first days of convalescence from this illness, and
if there is at the same time any real cause of mental
anxiety or distress, a state of mind is produced
hardly distinguishable from melancholy madness,
except by its cause and duration. I had been dis-
abled, at an unfortunate time, by a bad attack of
diphtheria, and the inevitable feeling of depression
was aggravated by the fact that the scientific expe-
dition to which I was attached had sailed without
me, a friendly rival filling my vacant place, and a
family upon whom I had been particularly anxious
to call before starting on the expedition had left
London during my illness, probably without hear-
ing of it, so that they were free to imagine I had
started for a two years' absence without even the
bare formality of leave-taking. They were travel-
ling abroad, I knew not where, and, besides, I had
no colorable excuse for writing to explain a neglect
they had not perhaps observed.
25
26 C OJVS OLA TIONS.
Physical weakness and mental despondency re-
acted on each other, and a more melancholy con-
valescent seldom accepted the island hospitality.
The day after arrival was cold and cloudy, I was
exhausted with a long journey, and, glancing care-
lessly at the ungenial sky, I thought the prescription
of " change of scene " a shallow device of the doc-
tors for sending their patients to suffer out of sight
and earshot. The morning after was gray, too, but
neither cold nor wet, and towards eleven o'clock,
with the sense of discharging a laborious duty, I
started for my first short walk. I remember walk-
ing along a solitary lane, and noticing the ruts and
grass along the footpath, and feeling dimly injured,
as if it wasn't worth a long voyage to see only that.
But, in fact, the eyes of my mind and body were
closed from simple feebleness : I had no vivid con-
sciousness of despair, only a passive sense of being
" used up " too completely for either remedy or re-
volt.
I did not see that the clouds were breaking, and
that a clear space of blue sky was showing on the
horizon. I was tired with my few minutes' walk,
and thought I would just struggle to the shore for a
moment before struggling back to idle sulkiness
upon the couch in-doors. A tolerably easy zigzag
path led down to the beach. I noticed a spider's
web on the bramble that caught my ulster, and once,
when my foot slipped, in catching the rock to steady
C ONS OLA TIONS. 2 7
myself, I.nearly put my hand upon an ugly slimy slug.
I carried an extra scarf for prudence, and even that
grasshopper was a burden to my feeble limbs. I
had fallen an unresisting victim to the peculiar peev-
ishness which succeeds acute disease, and if any
organism higher than the slug had come in my way
it would have found me villanously cross.
On reaching the bottom my temper was not im-
proved by the first few steps over the raised beach
of large rounded pebbles upon which, even in health,
one may stagger a little uncomfortably ; as in the
lane, I had been looking straight before me, with
unobsei-vant eye and consciousness turned inwards,
but it was a relief to reach a footing of fine firm
shingle and sand, and with this encouragement I
looked up. I was startled ; it seemed as if I had
been asleep and woke with a start.
I don't know what else was in sight, but this is
what I saw. The inner arch of a sea-green wave
was coming towards me, and the sun shone through
the green. It was such a shock as if an angel had
touched blind eyes and scales fell oft^, making reve-
lation of lip-ht and color — ligrht and color the like
of w^hich I had never felt the sight of before. There
M'as a crest of sunlit foam upon the coming wave,
but it was the soft, luminous emerald of the ap-
proaching arch that thrilled me with something like
the sweet wonder of first love, and I did not want
to see anything but that. The wave broke, and I
«o C OJVS OLA TIONS.
stood still with childish impatience to see if the
next wave would repeat the delightful line and hue.
A moment of anxious suspense, and then a longer,
Straight level line of wave lifted its head behind the
surf, tossed its snowy curls, and swept majestically
on one side the scrappy relics of its predecessor's
end ; then, as it came nearer, all along the line
there was this wondrous cui-ve of colored sunlight,
softer than a clear emerald, fuller than the green of
a sunset sky, more lasting than the opal's flash ; its
beauty possessed me. I forgot everything but the
present moment and the wave. Just where I was,
in the middle of the beach, I sat down. Life had
come back to me already, for all my soul was eager
expectancy and hope. What would become of me
if I never saw this magic arch of light again } I
could wait for its return a minute, half a minute —
surely it would come ! My pulse beat again with
the hopes and fears of life.
Time measured itself by waves, not moments.
The tide does not go on rising evenly ; after a suc-
cession of fine, perfectly formed, proudly crested
waves, the sea takes breath, and tiny rollers follow
upon each other's heels, not one of which has might
to wave away into its own volume the foaming de-
bris of the last. Sometimes a big wave had its in-
rush spoilt by the back draught of a still mightier
forerunner, and then all was seething foam, and I
lost sight of my sea-green arch. Was it in such
C OJVS OLA TIONS. =^9
caves that the sea fairies play, and was it only now
and then by favoring chance that mortal eyes could
catch glimpses of the hidden archway through?
Somehow, as the spot one gazes on grows large,
when one sees nothing outside this spot, one's mind
perhaps guesses that it must be as large as all the
many things we are ^vont to see at once together.
So this green arch seemed to swell mountainously,
and I could have believed the call if some mer-
maiden's hand had beckoned me near, as to the outer
porch of the ocean palaces. But there was com-
pensation, even when the foam veiled the opening
gates of this unknown world ; for the big waves
that were all foam played with the wind, and the
sun played with the waves' plaything, and the spray
rose in showers that glittered like dewdrops, and
once a tiny foam-bow laughed at me, mocking me
slyly — Will you not watch and wait for me? But
I was too wise ; like a child who has found the
right playfellow and a game to its mind, I was happy
with the sea, and whoever had wished to read my
thoughts must have watched a happy child with no
room in its thoughts but for the grave prayer to a
big playfellow, " Do it again, please." Again and
again the waves rose and fell ; slowly and cautiously,
like an army with scouts, the waves drew nearer,
feeling their way, and again and again the wonder-
ful arch of green came like music on my troubled
30 C ONS OLA TIONS.
mind — if indeed I had a mind, and not rather within
the throbbing temples —
That ocean where each kind
Does straight its own resemblance find ; —
Yet it creates transcending these
Far other worlds and other seas,
Annihilating all that's made
To a green thought in a green shade.
Time and trouble were no more, and when at last
the waves were already washing the shingle at my
very feet, and I rose reluctantly to leave the en-
chanted spot, I found to my amaze that hours had
passed.
Crawling home was another affair, but as I sank
on to the sofa to rest out the day, instead of the
morning's sulkiness, it was with a half-smile I
thought to myself, perhaps I am going to get well
after all ! and I went to sleep at night with less
than a resolution, a dumb perception that, of course,
as soon as the sun was out to-morrow I would go
back to the shore and look for my w^ave again. I
have seen the sea break often since, and I Avatch
with the double pleasure of association for the ten-
der lights that shine too rarely through the trans-
parent curving waters, but I have never seen again
one wave quite like that first, and I have never felt
again at the sight quite the same thrill of startled
pleasure as on this morning when the glory of the
C ONS OLA TIONS. 3 1
waters called me back to hope and new sympathy
with the world's Te Deu?n.
The next day I had no thought but to renew the
once tasted delight, but I slept well, and was ready
to start a little earlier in the day. The sun was
fully out, but an hour sooner in the day makes half
a tide's difference to the beach, and I felt like one
whose lover has broken tryst when on reaching the
halting-place of yesterday the sea appeared a long
stone's throw off, and there were no breaking waves.
Still one must take one's friends as one finds them,
and I could forgive something to my playfellow ;
besides, the sands were smooth and dry, the sky was
of the softest deep blue, cloudless, but without the
cold intensity that follows rain, rather as if the
thinnest veil of rosy mist hung over the dazzling
vault ; the cliffs which I saw almost for the first time
began with a grand precipice, and then a broken
craggy promontory ran out to sea, and one steep
wall of it was covered with a cloak of ivy. I looked
round and took courage to seek my fortune at the
water's edge. It was near low water, and shallow
waves were breaking in foam less ripples upon a
level shingly beach ; a few loose rocks lay together
with wet sea-weed clinging to a kind of water-mark
half way up their sides ; the sun had dried the
upper surface, instinct was driving me to follow the
land as far to sea as I could, and by making a cause-
way of these rocks, I came to a point that let me
32 C ONS OLA TIONS.
look down upon the clear shallow sea, and hear be-
hind me the swish of the ripple as it sank back over
the shingle.
Then I looked for my friend of yesterday. It
wasn't quite canny. Had the mermaidens been at
work, and was my world changed as I slept } There
were no green breakers here, and yet I could not
turn away in blank disenchantment, for another
spell was cast on me ; here was magic and mystery
and an enchantment more ineffably subtle than the
last. It is the nature of the sea's waves to break,
and I have dreamt of ' ' the light that never was on
sea or land ; " but what is this light on sea and land
at once, shedding colors by the side of which the
rainbow is uniform and sober? The surface of the
sea was mottled like a mackerel sky, but the dancing
ripples had a thousand changing hues, all painted
as it were upon a background of shining transparent
gold, or rather upon gold of a luminous sheen that
lent transparency to the bright colors laid on it. I
watched the dazzling surface of the water, trying
patiently and in vain to see what colors made the
brightness. In the delirium of illness I had been
haunted with queer fancies about space of four di-
mensions ; I wondered was this the land where
space had four dimensions, and had the colors of
the spectrum changed to match ; for if so, it seemed
that the fourth dimension was the color of sugar-
candy, and every color of the rainbow in this uni-
CONSOLATIONS. 33
verse was mixed with gold-brown light, turning the
blue and the green of the old world into new and
indescribable shades. The sea was very still and
clear, and the sun glittered on the shallow pebbly
bottom, as well as the glancing surface, and one
sheet of illuminated color shone through the other,
and I knew not which was which.
All I felt was the spell bidding me look and listen
and drink in the sunshine. I stretched myself on
tlie stones like a thankful mollusk, and as one
spreads one's hands to the fire in winter, or a sup-
pliant outstretches them to claim a boon, so my thin
cold fingers spread themselves out to catch the
showered warmth of the sun's radiance ; and mixing
with the soothing warmth was the stiil music of the
alternate splash and rustle of the rippling tide, a
faint splash as the tiny wavelets broke, then a trick-
ling sound like that of the stream's current when
the boat forges ahead as the oars are at rest, and
then a rustle like that of wind or showers on the
forest leaves as the retiring water bade the sand
and shingles kiss, as it ran away from them like a
child at play, crouching in mock concealment, ere
it springs upon its playfellow with another sweet
caress. I felt very near the world of strange sea-
beasts ; the sun touched some archaic fibres in my
frame, and I seemed to understand how wise mol-
lusks that lay still and looked at it, grew lovely with
green and orange, lilac, rose and crimson. A mo-
34 C ON SOLA TIONS.
ment more and I might have drunk in more wisdom
than the sea spirits hold good to grant to mortal
men, but the magic spells were a lullaby and I lost
myself awhile, the bright sea vanished, and I only
heard, as if far off in dreams, now and again the
trickling wavelets and felt the gracious warmth
pouring into my outstretched hands.
After a time some obtrusive vertebrae reminded
me we had degenerated from the possibilities of
molluscous ease. The tide had ebbed and turned,
and it was still just possible to leave my rocks dry
shod and regain the beach, but I was less simply
happy than yesterday. Life was becoming strenu-
ous. If every day was 'iO be crowded like this with
new emotions — my doctor had forbidden excite-
ment — I wasn't at all sure that I was well enough
to stand the strain. They talk about sending one
to the sea to rest, but it is much easier to dissect a
jellyfish than to retrace the course of evolution in
one's own person and grow back into one again ;
and yet experience seemed to show that sane hu-
manity could not bask in the seaside sunshine with-
out feeling irresistibly tempted to cherish that im-
possible ambition. It would be a help towards
understanding the philosophy of dreams if we more
often watched the wandering course of sleepy
thoughts that we suffer to choose their own way at
the random guidance of association ; I felt vaguely
as if there was a mystery to solve, as if there must
CONSOLATIONS. 35
be a reason, could I but remember or find out, why
on this solitary coast all at once " es -ward mir
heimisch zu Muth," and even as I wondered what
the problem was, my thoughts strayed sleepily into
wild and incoherent strains, in which it seemed as
if I was the passive inanimate portion of the natural
world while the sea and sky moved and spoke and
ruled around me. But I was tired now even of this
idle kind of thought, and concluded reasonably to
go home and to sleep over a stupid book.
I was not sorry the next day to be spared a fresh
encounter with the strange spirits of the island.
My host took me out in his boat ; we talked to the
sailors, of a son at sea, of the lobster fishery and the
vraic harvest, and things seemed real and natural.
I felt just a little afraid of fresh bewildering en-
counters, and I half planned for the next day to
stroll upon a higher level and not to go and w^atch
the sea break. So thought, so done. The shady
lane, with its pretty hedgerows, in which the pink
leaf-shoots of the young honeysuckle mixed with
the flowering May, led past a group of dwarf mas-
sive cottages with farm fittings of a Cyclopsean order
— the gate-post hung for a hinge in a perforated slab,
and the pigsties had granite troughs — to a footpath
opening on the downs. A pleasant light caught the
cottage roof, where a patch of golden moss grew
upon the thatch of the gable, and where a fluted
row of tiles formed an eave beyond the thatch to
36 CONSOLATIONS.
carry off the autumn rains. A wide-mouthed, clean-
faced girl was nursing a baby in the dooi"way, and
smiled benignantly as I passed. Walking was
easier than three days before, and I had resolved
not to think of anxious subjects till I was strong
enough to decide on them with better effect.
A fresh wind blew from the sea ; the path led at
a varying level along the down broken every here
and there with projecting crags, boulders fallen from
a crag above, and sudden walls of rock, where the
sea has carved a narrow inlet. It was a pleasant
path, but I had seen such views before in Devon,
Yorkshire, or maybe elsewhere ; nothing was strange
save the aromatic whiffs of some thymy perfume
that seemed to come from '^
The underflowers, which did enrich the ground,
With sweeter scents than in Arabia found.
But somehow the path tempted me to a distance
beyond my strength. I was tired of wide views
that seemed just like what one had seen and known
all one's life ; they seemed to remind me tiresomely
of what I was trying to forget, that life itself was
like to be hard and tiresome when I got back to it
anon. I wanted to escape from this remembrance,
and in another moment I should have been caught
regretting the weird spirits of the shore. A stronger
gust of wind, that it was a labor to battle with, put
the crowning touch to my discontent. Just in front
the down sank a little, a steep, green, semicircular
C ONS OLA TIONS. 3 7
arena faced the sea, and I struggled on to reach its
shelter. Only a step or two beyond the ridge and
the air was warm and still, like a June evening. I
threw myself on the slope and felt the rapture of
repose. I was under the lea of a flaming gorse bush,
and the sweet shadowy fragrance stole upon the
senses unawares ; something ineffably sweet and
subtle seemed to pen'ade the moveless air, the sub-
tle sweetness was strange and new — were there
spirits of the earth here as well as of the sea }
I forgot the weariness, and half raised myself to
see whence this new wonder came. The clump
that sheltered me was ablaze with the deepest
orange-yellow bloom ; each flowering spiky head
was an abyss of warm, deep, odorous color; furze
like this, indeed, I had never seen before, every
blossom large and open wide, and countless full
open blossoms, jostling each other upon every stem,
and the flowering stems jostling each other on the
burning bush. I drew a big branch towards me,
and drank like nectar a great draught of the pure,
sweet scent. But the sweet gorse is a treasure, not
a mystery, and the first breath I drew on this spot
was laden with a mystery of sweetness. I lay back
upon the grass again w^ith closed eyes, inviting the
ethereal messenger, and my heart sank as for half a
moment I waited in vain for the perplexing fra-
grance. I moved impatiently, and threw my arm
back to make a pillow ; at the very moment some-
38 C ONS OLA TIONS.
thing like fairy fingers seemed to pull my hair, and
in a breath the scent was there again, and the sim-
ple magic of its being read. Mingled with the
gorse, half choked by the robuster clumps, but
thrusting its tender green leaves triumphantly
through the cushions of the younger plants, a very
thicket of sweetbrier w^as growing all round, and
the shoots I had crushed unknowingly were sending
out their sweetest fragrance to mix with the simple
nectar of the whin-bloom in a cunning draught of
unearthly delicacy. Those may laugh at me who
will, and count it strange to be thus moved by the
breath of a passing scent, but my heart grew warm
with love for those children of the warm, lone
earth ; they had shed their fragrance year by year,
and until now none had loved them for it. They
vs^ere generous to me, indeed, with the one-sided
generosity of power ; it was I, not they, that were
the richer for my loving them, for thinking with a
tender joy that Love himself had learnt his sweet-
ness from the flower's kisses, wherewith the great
iiother fed his youth, and the refrain to the pretty
fancy came to me like an omen : —
Cras amet qui nunquam amavit, quique amavit eras amet.
The sunlit waves came to me with a startling
and happy message that the outer world was fair,
whether I saw it or no ; but the sweetbrier among
the prickles challenged me to own a spiritual truth
CONSOLATIONS. 39
— the world was lovable, whether I saw why or no,
and whether its sweetness was beloved — as by me
to-day — or left unseen, undreamt of, through the
lonely years. My brain was tired and the thoughts
wandered wildly ; snatches of old hymns mixed with
the '" Pei*\4gilium Veneris," and my last thought
was a dreamy wonder, whether the love of God
was something like my love of earth just now. A
wave of love sweeps over us just when we feel the
one thing needed given, and the love that seeks its
object will own none but the imagined giver, and to
the imagined object of our love we give a name —
our God, kind Earth, or Mother Nature — and such
naming is in itself a prayer, a blessing and a thanks-
giving far the good God's gift. Thoughts like these
rose questioningly ; and pleased with asking, ere the
question pressed for answer, I was asleep con dio.
Noon was past, and the south sun had travelled
two hand-breadths towards the right before I woke,
rested, hopeful, and refreshed. The sound that
woke me was the tinkle of a sheep-bell, following
an old crone, who was tethering the family cow to
graze on the common just above. I called to her,
and though our friendly speech was mutually unin-
telligible, like two children of nature we arranged
friendly terms of barter, and she brought me a cup
of creamy milk and a stale crust of home-baked
bread. I rose invigorated, and before leaving my
warm lair bent for one more draught of the mixed
40 C ONS OLA TIONS.
sweet scent. Alas ! the island is enchanted ! the
gorse was sweet, and so was the brier, with their
several known and pleasant sweetness, but the
unearthly fragrance of those two moments came
back to me no more. It may be that, as slight
sounds are distressing to a feeble brain that would
pass unnoticed else, so a more than normal keen-
ness of the other senses goes with moments of
excited feebleness. Basking in the sunshine I had
felt a dim intuition of ancient kinship with the
many-colored zoophytes of the shallow seas. Here
on the thymy heights what more natural than to
remember some hints of fellowship with the insect
hosts, whose very hum seems to catch some inter-
mediate sense, and is more felt than heard? Still I
was undismayed ; whether the momentary sensation
was to be renewed hereafter, or to remain forever
alone in memory, I could doubt my life or love
more easily than the certain fact that, once and
again, I had been drunk w4th ineffable odors in
this sunny island combe.
I was strong now for a new departure, but the
wind was still high upon the downs, and my
thoughts reverted to a wide path leading to the
shore, the upper end of which lay not far back. I
had wondered as I passed to what the path could
lead, for there was neither beach nor anchorage
below. The path was plain and easy, and landed
me upon a slightly sloping surface of solid rock ;
C ONS OLA TIONS. 41
massive iron rings were fixed in it here and there,
and rusty iron bars between them were twisted like
wire into uncouth shapes by the fury of the waves.
At one side the edge of the rocky slab sank sheer
into the water, and there was a deep, narrow pas-
sage where a boat might run alongside to land its
cargo ; clearly it was here that the sailors used to
land their boat-loads of sea-weed, to be carried up
the path to spread upon the fields of the nearest
farmstead as manure. The landing-place was one
that could only be used in the fairest weather, and
the station was deserted now ; the coast was rough
and broken, rocky pinnacles, tiny islets, and sharp
sunken rocks in masses, large and small, strewed
the coast, and the fresh wind was dashing great
waves against them all with deafening roar.
And when the sea was breaking, I could do no
other than draw near to watch it break. The old
spell drew me on to the farthest accessible point of
rocky projection ; by clambering beyond the broad
level slab, along a kind of promontory, covered at
high water by the sea, but now dry save for a few
pools in the spray-worn hollows, and bare of all
maritime life because of the violence of the waves,
one reached a secure low pinnacle, round which the
waves were breaking in all their glory. The noise
was deafening, the sea a clear sea-green, the sky
and sunlight bright and clear. Chance fixed my
eye at once upon a certain rock over which each
42 C ONS OLA TIONS.
wave broke, burying the summit beneath a flood of
foam ; then as the wave retreated and the rock rose
from its immersion, still waterfalls fell as if from
some secret reservoir, from ledge to ledge of the
rock, into the still seething, surging surf below, and
ere one could discover whence these little cataracts
proceeded, another wave submerged the whole bed
of rocks, and again retired, leaving unaccountable
waterworks to play for a moment and vanish again.
It was a giddy sight, like watching the revolutions
of a waterwheel, and that, too, in doubt as to what
the designers of the machinery had meant to com-
pass by its motions. A great wave broke, and a
shower of spray rose up against the sky, where the
fickle wind caught it and sent a cool handful lightly
in my face. I was dazzled for a moment, and as I
recovered sight my eyes were bent a yard or two
farther out to sea, upon the right.
Here, when the wave had burst, the sea was level
with thick, white smooth foam, but as the waters
rushed back, sucked down as if b}^ a great passion
of remorse, then, instead of black rocks showing
sharp teeth above the surf, the waves, as they sank
back, disclosed a deepening, M^idening, wdiirling
abyss, with walls of whirling foam, a funnel-shaped
vortex, boring down as it revolved into deeper and
deeper recesses of the sea, with foaming sides, seem-
ing to recede from the intent gaze. The snowy
whiteness of the whirling billows, the seeming soft-
CONSOLATIONS. 43
ness of a sea all foam, have a strange fascination for
the giddy senses ; there are clouds on which one
would choose to rest if they were in reach, and no
cloud could promise a softer, cooler, sweeter rest-
ing-place than the very heart of this foaming whirl-
pool. Wave upon wave spent itself, and I could
not cease from watching the returning, ever-varying
face of the whirling hollow, down which creamy
cataracts poured over the shifting watery walls.
The sun shone upon the foam, it glittered like snow,
and one might have said there was no purer white-
ness in the world than this, when all at once there
floated across the foam another brightness, of white,
glancing, sunlit ^vings. I remembered as a child
having w^ondered how in heaven we should know
one angel from another if they all wore the same
white robes, and had wings of just one shape. It
would have strengthened my young faith much if
they had shown and told me that one white radiance
might difi^er from another as far as blue and crimson.
And still to this day one hears the shallow saying,
A thing is either right or wrong — it must be black
or white ; whereas the glory of one rightness may
differ from the radiance of another as the silvery
glitter of the gull's white wings differs from the
dazzling ^vhiteness of the sunlit foam. The sea-
gulls were swooping through the air and skimming
for a moment the surface of the waves, but one
seemed to have made her nest upon the very rim of
44 C ONS OLA TIONS.
the boiling caldron of Charybdis, and it was only
on a closer look that I saw at moments just a speck
of black rock showing momentarily through the
surf. The sea-bird was perched upon the rock,
and the waves washed round it, and the sil\:er wings
shone like moonbeams, like the moon resting on a
cushion of snowy moonlit clouds. And again and
again, as I looked from the swirling waters to the
still flight of the circling gulls, the two spirits of
brightness would meet for a joyous moment as the
sea-bird nesded among the foam.
The cheerful voice of our host roused me at length
from reveries in which it seemed possible that a
world should be, with only difterences between one
and another right, between the new creations of
wisely loving souls and the different glories of con-
sistent truths. I followed him, silently thinking,
too, that it made a change in the memory of sad and
gloomy hours to think that through them all the
gulls had hovered in still circles over the unchang-
ing sea. But that evening, as I read a Frenchman's
letters, I took to heart what he says to a friend of .
such walks as these of mine with the island spirits :
"La memoire de ces promenades est a la fois un
plaisir et une douleur. Cest pour mot une sensa-
tion qiCil faut 7^e7iouvele7' sans cesse pour qu'elle
ne devienne pas trister This is partly true of all
pleasures, and wholly true of the pleasures of love.
I was in love with these sweet spirits, and love
CONS OLA TIONS. 45
grows sad without daily renewal of the one joy of
meeting the beloved. I had felt this already, and,
knowing life could not be spent in the incessant re-
newal of solitaiy delights, hencefoi-ward I sought
the company of my fellows, and went cliffing,
shooting, boating, swimming, with my host and the
island fishers.
It was not till the last evening of my stay that I
ventured upon a solitary farewell stroll. The im-
pression had been gaining strength in my mind that
my first thoughts of despair had been premature and
exaggerated. If the Arctic expedition had started
without me, that might be a loss, but the other mis-
fortune was the less irreparable in consequence. I
might see the s in less than two years ; nay, I
was beginning to think that it would be possible,
without indiscretion, to let Mrs. know that it
was not by choice I had failed in attentive, nay,
assiduous, respect. I did not know their address,
but they were going to be at Venice in June, and
the English banker there was an old school friend
of mine, to whom I could easily entrust a circum-
stantial message, with a hint that he should deliver
it in the hearing of both ladies at once. I was think-
ing of these things, and not looking where I went,
when suddenly I was brought up against one of the
rough stone walls, crowned with a stubby hedge,
which sei-\xd to divide the farms of different pro-
prietors on the island. I had been landed before in
46 C ONS OLA TIONS.
a similar Impasse. A path led into the field for its
owner's use, but none led through, as the farmers
did not trespass on each other's land. I had no such
scruple, and scaled the wall, walking along the top
of it to find a gap in the hedge, where I could drop
down on the other side. At the convenient spot I
sat down for a moment to rest in sight of a still blue
patch of sea. The curving down framed it as in a
hollow, and on the left, where the land rose above
the horizon, in clear relief against the pale blue sky,
stood out one solitary fir-tree. One saw the sky
betw^een the branches, and the upper outline against
the sky ^vas clear and dark. It was resting to look
upon. My enjoyment of the island beauties had
grown dangerously strenuous, because I could not
break the trick of trying to find a meaning every-
where. This tree against the sky proved nothing,
and all the more for that its mere contemplation
was fraught with inexplicable pleasure.
I went on my w^ay, breathing a blessing on the
good householder who had tended the fir-tree in its
youth ; and though 1 don't know that my 'prayers
had anything to do with the result, I was as much
pleased as if they had, when I heard that the good-
wife's son came back the next week from a three-
years' voyage, with all his pay in his hand, enough
to buy the ten shares in the market-boat which old
neighbor Nicholas had left to provide a portion
for his only daughter. But I did not know this
C ONS OLA TIONS. 47
then, so my prayers were only for unspecified good
luck.
After re-entering the castle lands, I wandered
through the first pine wood, bending inland by
degrees, and just as I neared the public way I turned
back, leaning on a grassy bank. This time I was
silenced ; no thought of God or man, angel or faery
magic, crossed my mind. The view was of pure,
sober, lovely earth, and the eyes w^ere glad to rest
unthinkingly on its stillness. From the grass bank
on which I leant the land sloped gradually to the
seaw^ard. There w^as not much difference in the
level, but enough to show far round on either side
a narrow strip of dark blue glittering sea ; in front,
and as far round as the eye readily saw at once, be-
tween me and the sea, there stood a low thin belt of
firs ; and as I had seen the sky through the branches
of the one fir-tree by the farm, so now the blue sea
showed through the wood between the tree stems,
and the dark green foliage against the blue stood out
in sharp relief, and the sky above the deep blue sea
was blue, dim with a rising haze. There was
nothing to be thought or said, and yet weariness
was impossible ; the vision was of embodied rest :
the still universe seemed a temple of the Most High,
and I fed my soul by looking.
It was the memory of this long look that came
back to me first, forty-eight hours afterwards, when
I leant out of a third-flour bedroom in Bloomsbury
48 C ONS OLA TIONS .
to seize a glimpse of the sunset sky. On rare ex^,,,'
ings, when the clouds have melted, there is a )j;tie
patch of pearly-gray, between the houses, shat^i.ng
into beryl-like transparency, and the topmost twigs
of an old elm-tree make a feathery fringe of green
against the sky. Here, too, is stillness, beauty and
unreasoning peace ; and down below a neighbor has
trained a jessamine against his bit of garden wall.
I saw the feathery green of the new year's young
rich shoots, and the white flowers that shine like
stars upon a moonless night against their dark, cool
bed. The light grew paler and paler, a short-lived
flush of pink came and went, and then the pale gray
deepened into night, still, calm and sweet, and the
starry jessamine still glimmered through the shade.
Night fell, and then I wrote to Venice.
That was five years ago. The dutiful little note
of answ^er that Marian wrote to me in her mother's
name had one word more of kind regard in it than
strict civility required, and on the faith of that word
I worked, and hoped, and waited ; and as the years
went on I never ceased to remember in dark hours
that to every change of joy and sorrow in the mixed
web of human life there is a far-away accompani-
ment of unchanging beauty, peace and calm delight,
for the gulls swoop as ever through the sunlit air, and
alight upon the breaking waves, and the starry jes-
samine shines at sunset through the London smoke.
C ONS OLA TIONS. 49
Marian asks why I never told her all this before.
Are you jealous, sweetheart, of my amours with
the spirits of the waves and flowers ? And besides,
what was there to tell ? It is a long story, and yet
it comes to very little. I was ill and went to the
seaside, and the waves broke, sweet wild-flowers
grew, and the changing sky was overhead. I saw
visions and dreamed dreams ; but rash mortals fare
ill who would woo the very gods. The island imps
teased me, they hid when my heart was aching ;
but I think, darling, they meant it kindly, for after
eveiy trick they played me came back the memory
of a sweet, fair face, with grave brown eyes that
could not tease or trifle ; and if I v/as ever faithless,
this was my sin, and you must forgive it to the
fairies of the shore ; but for their mischievous bright
magic I had despaired at once of life and love^ and
— Marian — y ou .
J 3W\.
Thank luve that list you to his merci call.
— James I. of Scotland.
11.
AND who is this new artist with a speaking-
brush ? " said Sir Alfred Osborne, as I was
showing him after dinner the last additions to my
modest gallery ; " and what nut is he giving us to
crack — is it a new version of the Choice of Her-
cules, or a modern riddle of Sacred and Profane
Love?"
I said, with feigned unconcern, "The dipt)xh.^
Oh ! that was my wife's last birthday present. I
hope you like it, for the fact is, I want to persuade
you to do the artist's portrait for me." (Indeed I
had asked him to dinner with that sole purpose in
my machiavellian mind.) The courtly President of
the Royal Academy bowed towards the lady of the
house, and turned his assent into a prayer for his
fellow-artist's gracious leave. When the portrait
was exhibited, I heard one pamter call to another,
" Look at this woman with the everlasting eyes."
People who want to flatter me call my wife a femi-
nine Watts, and she has certainly never painted
anything better than this diptych : two single figures
of fair women in a plain black frame.
53
54 A DiprrcH.
In the First Panel.
We had spent six weeks in the same country
house, and were engaged to be married. I felt
very much in love, thought Edith the sweetest girl
in the world, and myself the happiest of men. You
remember one of three successive summers — not
this year or last — famous for continuous months of
hot sunshine? The six weeks were cloudless, and
to this day I recall them as a period of unclouded
brightness. I had never even fancied myself in love
before, and it seemed as if an undiscovered world
was all at once revealed in the moment when my
love quivered on the verge of passion at the first
parting after, we thought, our hearts had met. I
had to return to my work in London, and we were
not to be together again until the autumn. We
parted in the garden alone, and I felt that I was,
indeed, the happiest of men when, after pressing
her in, my arms and kissing the fair girlish cheek, a
faint flush rose to the temples, and, burying her
face as if she would hide from me in my own arms,
she turned the other cheek to my kiss.
After this the parting was a bearable distress.
We wrote sweet letters like many another pair of
lovers. Edith's were all that a girl's first letters to
her love should be — tender, playful, shy, and hint-
ing at a depth of feeling that did not yet dare to find
a voice. I was content, without misgiving, and
A DIPTTCH. 55
carried about with me through each day's engage-
ments an underlying sense of still delight, like the
feeling with which sometimes one wakes from
sleep, wondering what pleasant thing is waiting to
be remembered. As if in sympathy with Edith's
innocent faith in her lover's talents and desert, the
chapter of accidents brought me just then first one
happy chance and then another, and it seemed very
pleasant to have some one that it was a duty to
make happy by telling her pleasant things about
one's self. I caught myself thinking that if married
men did not confide in their wives, or if their waives
did not sympathize with the confidences, the fault
must be in the men. I kept back nothing, and
Edith's sympathy was angelically ready, and quite
as intelligent as could be expected, considering that
the darling girl was just the desirable least bit on
the further side of perfect wisdom in her estimate
of the man she loved.
Then they came to London. Easter fell early the
next year, and w^e were to be married just after, and
enjoy our spring in the summery south. The first
warning or hint of a misunderstanding left me
almost stunned with simple amazement. This was
how it befell. Church-going was not much in
vogue at the country house where we had met first.
The church was ugly, too far to be a tempting walk,
too near to break the coachman's Sabbath. On two
Sundays, I remembered now, I had ridden across
56 A DIPTYCH.
country to see my own people, and so had not had
to give an account of my doings in regard to pubHc
worship. Then the first Sunday of my stay Edith
had perhaps only thought of me as one young
heathen among the rest, and the last two weeks
w^e had made a compromise, not too painful to her
conscience. She stayed at home with me in the
morning, and in the evening I went to church with
her and sang Ken's and Keble's evening hymns
with some real devotional feeling. Who has not
felt as if it would be good for him to have good
angels always as near as heaven seems on a sum-
mer's evening as the church-bells ring for vespers ;
wild rose and honeysuckle trail from the shady
hedgerows, the footpath through the meadow leads
only to the village church, and what if each stile is
blocked by a rustic pair of sweethearts, so long as
the accomplished child of the gay world by our side
is ready to answer our longer, more exacting woo-
ing as satisfactorily as these buxom damsels do the
laconic "• Wiltha.'*" of their slouching swains?
Now in London, Sunday was my chief holiday,
and I had not cared to waste it in sitting under
eminent preachers. Perhaps it was stupid of me.
I had no home or sisters to show me the ways of
this feminine world, but it had simply never
occurred to me that it could make any difference to
Edith how much or little I believed of the things
she went to church to say. Once or twice we had
A DIPTYCH. 57
had a little playful sparring as I thought ; as I have
a soul on earth to save, I thought it was no more ;
and I was at a loss to guess what troubled her when
one Thursday Edith seemed shy and silent, and on
the Saturday as I spoke of what we would do and
talk about to-morrow, she blushed and looked
embarrassed, and then said, •• Would you mind not
coming to-morrow ; I want a long talk ^vith you,
but not to-morrow, please ; after Sunday, which
day next ? " She seemed unhappy, but I thought it
was only some girlish trifle, perhaps some woman
friend she wanted to see and did not like to put
before my visit ; but since she was ill at ease, I
would not even notice the little nothing that had
come between us, and planned at once a drive, a
visit we could pay together, and a walk which,
though suburban, was solitary on week-days.
All this was agreed upon for Tuesday. Edith
was herself again by then ; we talked as usual
through the drive, paid our duty visit to an aristo-
cratic godmother, who received me graciously, and
then, bidding the carriage meet us half a mile
farther on, we were alone at last. The field before
us was bleak, the wind blew freshly over the brow
of the hill we skirted, and the birds were singing ;
we met two roughs with an air of Ratcliff High-
way about them, and lines and cages in their hands
that implied an uncomfortable threat against the
songsters' peace. The hedges had a sun-dried look,
58 A DIPTTCH.
and the sheep's wool was ragged and smutty ; but
the new brick-field and its latest emanations were
behind us, the lightly trodden footpath had a rural
bogginess, we saw the sky, we were together and
alone.
Maybe some foolishness passed between us, and
then her eyes met mine with happy frankness. I
said. All was well, was it not.? I knew nothing
was the matter last week, but just for a moment I
had been frightened by the fancy — supposing any-
thing should be } She said that was just it ; she
had been frightened — foolishly, she was sure, and
now- she did not like to tell me what it was ; —
should she tell me now } I was sure to say it was
only foolishness, but she didn't mind that, since it
wasn't really true.
" Since what was not really true? " I asked with-
out the shadow of anxiety.
She blushed and hesitated, and said, Would I
forgive her, she ought not to have believed what
any one else said — she didn't believe it, but it had
made her unhappy only to hear it said that I —
As I am a sinner, I expected some such unlikely
slander as that I drove my horses with a bearing
rein, or had been seen shooting at Hurlingham. The
ghosts of my god-parents forgive me ! It was with
much the same sense of relief and irrelevancy that I
heard at last the end of the stammering sentence.
It was foolish of her to make so much of it ; she
A DIPTTCH. 59
had thought since that Mr. So-and-so wasn't speak-
ing seriously when he said it, but at first it had
frightened her. "You know," she added shyly, ' ' we
have never yet spoken about those things, and so I
couldn't feel as if I knew for myself all that you feel
— I only know you are so good. I never ought to
have doubted."
"But you haven't told me yet, sweetheart, of what
the calumniator accused me.^"
It was pretty to see the flash of illogical delight
that shone through her tears as she cried, " I knew
it ! I was sure you would say it was a calumny.
Forgive me, darling, it was my love that made it
seem so horrible, and yet I ought — if I had only
loved you as I ought — to have known that it could
not be true."
I suppose it is some wretched sui*\'ival of the brute
that makes a man feel stupidly as if he were some-
how a finer fellow himself when the woman he loves
is the least bit of a (darling) goose. I felt a momen-
tary temptation to test my power by accepting this
blank cheque of acquittal, and promising to forgive
my darling this once if she would ne\er believe
any harm of me again. I thought of this only as a
passing jest, — of course she would tell me what it
was all about at some future time, and we should
laugh together over our first and last attempt at a
" serious explanation."
Fortunately for both our lives, this slighting im-
6o A DIPTTCH.
pulse revolted me as a disloyalty to my heart's young
queen ; and as we pulled ourselves together v^ith a
joint consciousness of having behaved with a some-
thing less than our usual decorum, I took up the
interrupted conversation in the most matter-of-fact
tone I could command. " So-and-so is really a
good friend of mine ; what was it he shocked you
by saying about me ? "
And she replied, this time without hesitation, " He
spoke as if you didn't believe in the Bible. Lady
said something about your review of Brugsch's
' History of Egypt,' and Mr. So-and-so laughed, and
said — I couldn't help hearing him, and it was that
that made me so unhappy ; I couldn't forget the
very words, and yet I didn't like to tell you about
it, because that looked as if I had more belief in him
than in you. The words were, ' Why, j^ou don't
suppose Arthur takes all the A. V. for Gospel } ' "
She went on, talking rather fast, as if to give herself
confidence, for I was silent and taken by surprise :
*"' Of course it was foolish of me to take to heart
what was said so lightly. I suppose it would be a
heresy to take the books of the Law, even in the
Authorized Version, for ' Gospel' in the true sense,
but it hurt me to think that a friend of yours — and
you say he is a real friend — should speak of you as
if you were not one of us. I wondered" — here
again her voice fell, and she blushed and hesitated,
and then half whispered, leaning on my arm the
A DIPTTCH. 6 1
while, " I wondered whether I was wrong to let
our marriage come so near without speaking of
these things. You know I had hoped we should
have the full sei*\'ice, but I was afraid to ask if you
would mind " —
There is a degree of misunderstanding that reme-
dies itself by dint of its very completeness. I did
not know in the very least what Edith was talking
about, but her words called up the thought of a doubt
that had crossed my own mind about our marriage
rites, and I answered the suggestion of my own
thoughts rather than hers. I drew her a little closer,
and spoke so gravely that the poor child's hopes
beat high.
" Of course, darling," I said, '"• I had not expected
you to go with me in quite everything I think :
people may love and trust each other without that.
Perhaps " — I was soon to be ashamed of this conceit
— " perhaps I can more easily enter into your ideas
than translate mine into the language you would
think orthodox, and that is why I thought it best
not to raise any discussion about our marriage. So
long as the form is legal, that is all that signifies ;
and I felt that it would be selfish of me to insist on
my own preferences in a matter that would make so
much unpleasantness for you. And besides, I
thought you yourself, dear, might have some feeling
against a civil marriage."
She looked at me with startled, uncomprehending
62 A DIPTYCH.
eyes. I had given up the idea of proposing that we
should be married by the Registrar, because of the
scandal it would cause in the family, and because I
thought it pedantic to make the sei-\'ices of that
estimable official an integral part of the Rationalist
creed. I did not guess that Edith had never heard
of a civil marriage, except as something vaguely
wicked, done in tracts by infidel working men, who
are subsequently persuaded by the curate to recon-
cile themselves to religion and morality by marrying
their old wives over again in church, in an atmos-
phere of penitent, religious awe, appropriate to a
deferred sacrament, like adult baptism. Edith had
understood me as little as I understood that her anx-
iety turned all upon the question which sometimes
fills half a volume in High Church novels for the
young, — was the bridegroom a good-enough
churchman to wish the full Communion Service
added to that for the solemnization of Holy Matri-
mony ?
The extent of our misunderstanding began to dawn
first on me, and then I set myself to explain. God
forgive me ! I still had a sense of capable condescen-
sion, as if we were acting Faust and Gretchen in the
Catechism scene. Edith listened, and I supposed
was following my lucid rendering of the poet's
Name ist Schall imd Laut^ when presently she
stopped, loosed my arm, and faced me with a piti-
ful look. "Arthur, I don't think I am clever
A DIPTTCH. 6^
enough to understand all that. Does it mean " —
she paused, rather as if she were the martyr called
upon to make confession with a stake in sight —
''does it mean that you believe in God and our
blessed Saviour, or does it mean something else ? "
At last, not without rage at my own blindness, I
saw all the danger. My heart sank. I said, "• Edith,
sweetheart ! my first and only love ! tell me, Edith,
now, at once — do you love me, dear?"
She laid her hand on my arm ; perhaps I had
never before felt such a longing for the love that still
delayed to answer. I had been so sure of my happi-
ness, I had never before felt the aching need of a
woman's all-embracing, all-overmastering tender-
ness, and instead of the longed-for, self-forgetting
welcome, she looked at me still as if we were
leagues and centuries apart, and she asked again,
with the same frightened, pitiful look, " Forgive me
for being so stupid. I don't quite understand.
Does it mean that you are — that you believe — in
Christianity or no ? "
Seeing her distress, I had no right to complain
of the chill I felt at having my own appeal un-
answered. The rest of our conversation was diffi-
cult ; she asked me to let her drive home alone ;
she would write ; we must meet another time. I
did not feel the less like a fool for being plante la
in a suburban road, at an unknown distance from a
cabstand and Charing Cross. Must a man pass or
64 A DIPTYCH.
set a theological examination before he can offer to
the girl of his choice ? If Edith had had a father
confessor on whom to lay the blame, I should have
known what to be at, and could have contented my-
self with wishing to wring his neck. W'hat was
the use of being in the right if one couldn't make its
rightness plain to a gentle, loving girl ?
The next fortnight was a penitential season- In-
terviev^s and pourpa^'lers succeeded each other.
Edith's family were averse to a rupture on grounds
of worldly expediency, and helped to prolong the
purgatory by their anxiety to find some ground of
compromise. The mother as good as asked me to
use a little brief hypocrisy, and touched the borders
of good taste in her anxiety to explain ho^v entirely
our two interests were one. It is bad for a girl to
be talked about as having broken off an engage-
ment ; but if it came to that ("as we all hope it
mayn't"), the real reason was sure to get known
too, and that could not fail to do a man some harm
in his profession. As it happened, I knew that a
scandal of this sort would do me a certain consider-
able and special injur}^ at once, but I answered
grimly it would signify the less if I had no wife de-
pending on my success. After this reach of dis-
tracting uncertainty, it was settled I was to see Edith
once more. It was a last hope. Would she or I
take back something of the words that made any
answer but a farewell impossible to the other ; or
A DIPTYCH. 65
would she say, as I had all along, let us think apart,
if we must, so long as we can love together?
Edith had wished to leave London while the
question was pending, and I went to see her at their
country house. It was a still, mild October day ;
the red and yellow of the beechwoods alternated
with the dark evergreen firs. There seemed to be
tlie same fragrance in the autumn noon as in those
summer evenings when her eyes first began to watch
for mine. vShe took me into the garden. A low
garden-seat stood in a solitary sunny corner. The
unf---'*quented path w^as soft with a thick carpet of
fallen lir-ncedles, and the gardener's boy had left a
swopt-up mound of them just by the seat. I leant
on this, that I might look up into her face as she sat.
The shadows lengthened while we talked — less
painfully, perhaps, than once or tsvice before, for
neither wished to make the inevitable harder than
needed to the other. But it was inevitable, and at
last tne moment for the last parting came.
I have never seen Edith since, and as we parted
then so she lives in my memory. As she lives in
my memory, so you see her on the panel now. She
w^as standing up, almost tall, very fair, with gray
blue eyes, in which tears stood, but w^ould .lot fall.
Her hair was very long and soft and waving, red-
brown in the darkest shadows, and bright, bright
gold for the rest. Whatever fashions came or went,
I do not see how she could ever wear her hair ex-
66 A DIPTTCH.
cept just so, in one soft hanging double twist, that
looked the only right way for a woman with soft
hair that waved. That afternoon she wore some
soft yellow-brown silk, full and simple like the robes
of Angelico's angels, and I seem to remember a
gold chain round the neck and a spray of myrtle,
and some pale yellow lace above the gold bracelet I
had given her, and the white hand I might never
kiss again.
Our last words had almost been said ; she stood
up, and I a pace or two away. A stack of withered
bracken filled the space between the tree stems be-
hind, and a spreading beech intercepted the light
of the western sun. Her figure appears before me
now, erect against this russet background. The
hands are half outstretched, as if refusing to wring
themselves in helpless anguish ; and in her eyes,
through the tears, there is still the same far-away
look that chilled my soul on the day when she did
not answer my first and last appeal — a longing,
pleading, unrelenting look ; and while the tender
lips seem to breathe, "Will you not stay with
me.^" the outstretched hands and far-off eyes utter
the doom of banishment, " I may not come with
you."
And so, as I left her, I see her still ; and through
the angry impatience of a lover who had counted for
less than he thought, I could not but respect the
single-hearted strength that drove me out. She had
A DIPTYCH. 67
had no doubt or struggle. If I did not or could not
see the truth as she did, it did not seem so much to
her that we must part, as rather that we had never
met. The keenest part of the blow to me was
knowinor that she had never for a moment thouo^ht
of lovinj]: me too much to care w^hether I was to ^o
to hell or heaven. But at the moment when I re-
sented this most strongly — what right had she to
accept my love if hers was so slight a thing .' — the
just afterthought obtruded itself too : Had /felt any
temptation to change myself, my life, my creed, for
her love's sole sake .''
In the Second Paizel
Was it all a horrible illusion, and had we never
loved at all ; and if not, what then w^as love ; w^ho
could tell, did any know? I looked all round, and
thought what Edith and I had meant, for love was
more like it than most of the substitutes that seemed
to pass current in the world unchecked. Was it
then a loveless world, and happiness the share only
of boys and girls whose bubbles had not burst as
yet ?
I did not stop to ask such questions. With that
last fair vision fresh in memory. I left England,
grimly conscious that a man in my plight might
fairl}^ be expected to earn his allotted fate by start-
ing promptly on some headlong road to ruin. But
to me this seemed a no?i sequitur. What though
68 A DIPTTCH.
Edith were twice the heartless fanatic I had a right
to call her : what was there in that to give me a new
taste for brandy or the society of cads ? If the best
of women were not quite good enough for the needs
of men, was it worth while to seek deliverance
among the worst ? One must live every day among
pleasures that turn to vice in their excess, to go to
ruin this way when the check of daily motives for
restraint is loosed. One is not now held only to
decency by a single knot, easy to cut.
I was content with the common distractions of
travel oft^ the beaten track in Italy. The chestnut
woods of the Apennines were kind to me, and the
girls had all black hair ; it was a folly, but I left
one pretty village unvisited because an English
family with golden-haired bambini was said to be
lodging there. The weeks passed, and brought a
kind of calm. I wondered whether I was ceasing
to dread the sight of my kind, or forgetting that the
sight might come — almost any day now, for I was
nearing Florence, and could hardly reach untrodden
ground again without taking to the railway. I had
been following the moment's impulse, and without
much purpose bade my last host drive me in his
calessino to the Pontassieve station. I thought
vaguely of picking up the fast evening train to
Arezzo and then wandering off again. But when
the Fates are ready for us, small chances will serve
tiieir turn. On the platform, waiting for the train
A DIPTTCH. 69
to Florence, was a man I knew, a good fellow,
officer in a rather fost regiment ; and as he recog-
nized me with effusion, I noticed he was not alone ;
there ^vas with him the most beautiful woman I
ever saw, and she had waving gold-brown hair.
I tried to escape, but the good fellow held me
fast. "You must know the Diva," he said. I,
with unseemly emphasis, "No, no, xo ! " He
said, "Why not.^" and I, "I don't like golden
hair."
At this he laughed cheerfully, and grasping me
by main force, called to the woman whose hair was
like Edith's, " Signora, Signora ! come and chain
this fugitive. , I want him in Florence, and he
oflers to run away because you have golden hair."
Then, with the most musical voice, save one, I
have ever heard, she said, "Would you run away
from me because some one else had golden hair.^
Come and see the red-gold of the oranges in the
sunset glow, and the pure gold dust of the fragrant
lemon blossoms, and after that you \vill call the hair
of women brown or yellow, or the shade of dusty
ashes. Come, come, come ! but we will not wait
for the train," and like some enchantress whose look
is a spell, she pointed to an open carriage just out-
side the barrier ; and without excuse or explanation,
in an instant the young Italian who was driving had
turned his companions adrift, gave the reins to his
groom, and took his place by our side. " Have
70 A DIPTYCH.
you told him to the villa?" said the Diva; " w^e
four dine together to-night."
Eleanora sang to us that night ; we saw the stars
come out, and the ripe lemons shone like silver in
the moonlight. The villa seemed a palace, and I
breathed freely. It was all as unlike what I was
fleeing from as the massy jet plaits of the Tuscan
peasant girls ; for tables, here and there were carved
chests and slabs of porphyry, the polished fragments
of an ancient bath ; for chairs, cushions of every
size, and shape, and substance, and no other furni-
ture but flowers, easels, and instruments of music.
She made the Italian sing to us some Neapolitan
songs of the people, and she prayed my friend to
write down the air of two that were new to her.
Then she turned to me and said, " Did she use you
very ill, that fair one with locks of gold?"
And I, to whom my oldest friends had never
dared so much as to seem to think, let alone speak,
of our broken engagement — I answered readily,
" Not at all ; she is a charming girl, and she threw
me over four ramoui' de Dieu. Novv^ I come to
think of it " — and I made this discovery as I spoke
— " the only thing that troubles me in the matter is
a misgiving v/hether le bon Dieu \m\\\ be as kind to
her as I should have been."
" Is that the only reason," and her eyes laughed,
" why you don't like golden hair? "
'^ No," I answered, still without a shade of reluc-
A DIPTTCH. 71
tance ; "it reminds me of the troublesome problem
I have never yet solved to my mind's contentment,
whether Edith ever loved me at all, or only thought
she did ; and w^hat love is, and whether anybody
knows ? "
Eleanora made herself a deeper nest in the pale
green cushions, and she turned the nearest lamp
round, so that the light fell away from us. " If you
ask me as an oracle," she said, " I will answer : —
Half of Edith's nature loved half of yours, and she
and you did not kno\v there was any more of either ;
and what love is takes many days to tell, and few
there be that have ears to understand the tale."
At eleven the Italian rose to go. I went w^ith
my friend to his hotel, and acquiesced in plans that
took for granted I should stay in Florence. Twice
more I saw the Diva. Those who had never been
favored by her notice laughed, and hinted her favor
was given lightly and to many ; but I have heard
her spoken of, and never Avithout a shade of tender
respect, by men w^ho w^ere pointed at as her dis-
carded lovers. To me she w^as generous and good.
Nothing passed between us but talk, rash and idle
if you please; but I entered the Via still sore
and sick at heart, and I left it healed and strong for
the manifold chances of life.
We soon gave up the attempt to converse in
English, the language of reserve and reticence ; she
spoke in Italian and I in French ; thus we were
72 A DIPTTCH.
botli free to think as well as to speak what came to
us. I said again, "Did Edith love me or I her?
What is love, and how to build it on a sure founda-
tion ? Can immortal love lodge with mortals, and
infinite passion hold together the narrow boundaries
of single souls? Is it our first wisdom to renounce
the dream, or with closed eyes to say we are not
yet awake ; or can we, seeing and knowing, not in
dreams, but alive and waking, can we find a truth
fairer and sweeter than an everlasting fjiir sweet
dream? Tell me this," I said, " O vv^ise Diotima !
and if indeed love is not all a dream, let me be your
scholar, and show me how to love."
She said, not all at once, but as my questions or
my silence prompted, "I have known three patterns
of happy, life-long love, and two were from your
country. The world would be different if there
were more like these, but the chances are strong
against us. There must be generosity, readiness to
apprehend and to conciliate, a high level of personal
qualities before any man or woman is safely to be
trusted with another's welfare. A small mind may
love vehemently, a mean soul tenaciously, and a
fickle one tenderly for a time ; but the capacity for
complete and lasting love carries a patent of nobility,
and here our difficulty begins again. For the de-
mands of a full and richly developed nature multi-
ply, and as individuals differentiate themselves — as
your philosophers would say — the chances multiply
A DIPTTCH. 73
against complete and spontaneous sympathy between
two several natures that have grown up apart. Per-
fect love grows choicer but more rare as new subtle-
ties of feeling are fed by thoughts and wishes ever
growing wider and more manifold ; and because
men cannot content themselves to be unloved, some
seek to build up their own soul's life by loving for a
while, now^ here, now there, the features that do not
meet in the one perfect form of a single constant
love. As I speak, you think of Goethe, and there
have been less famous women with a heart's history
not unlike his. The world's chance of happiness in
love was greater when simpler lives made simpler
feelings, which had the same history in a thousand
souls at once, so that any two out of the thousand
might pair harmoniously together."
I said, " Shall wx then leave this foolish world
that works so hard to earn its discontent, and find a
place where the hands of time stand still upon the
dial and rejoice in the easy loves of bygone days.^"
She answered, ''If we could! But an appetite
once felt lives on till it is starved or satiated, and
there are few but ha\'e felt once the desire for a diffi-
cult pleasure."
'^ And yet, what is easier than to begin to love.^"
"Ay, truly," said the Diva, and her full voice
rang out the assent like a challenge ; " but is it easy
to answer all the questions you hurled at me anon }
Consider, too, that love itself has manifold moods,
74 A DIPTTCH.
and since all of these must be shared or answered,
perfect love can hardly be where the soul's voice has
a narrow compass. There is the hungry passion of
covetousness, and the no less eager hunger of devo-
tion ; and one must be fed with joyous rapture, and
the other with a free acceptance. And then it is
not easy to pass unchilled from rapturous enjoyment
to the calm delight of loving neighborhood, nor to
accept boundless devotion without dulling the keen
edge of gratitude which makes acceptance sweet.
They know little of love " — her voice was like soft
music, and at each pause the air seemed filled with
the echo of a fiir-off minor air — " they know little
of love who know only its one face of midsummer
sunshine ; the eternal sun has its returning morning,
night and noonday, and the softest light may come
through earth-born vapors ; none know the true face
of love who cannot bear the changing revolutions of
its days and seasons. Some, that sorrow can unite,
grow indifferent when middling fortune gives ease
for sober years ; some, whose hearts beat together
in the sunshine, cease to keep pace as the vibrations
cool and slacken, and in their slow recurrence feel
more and more forcibly the check when the lagging
foot of the companion foils out of step."
She was looking out of window, not at, but far
away over, the rich luxuriance of the Tuscan spring
vegetation, and the dim purple horizon.
I said, "• Signora, as you speak one must believe,
I
A DIPTYCH. "J^
as one believes the Siren's song. It is sweet to
hear ; but tell me, is there anything more than diffi-
culty, such difficulties as these, in the commonplace
days of the real working world? "
She roused herself and looked at me with laugh-
ng wakeful eyes : '' There is for those to whom the
grace of love is given, and they " — here the laugh
died, and something of defiance, if not of scorn, took
its place in her glance — ''and they to whom the
grace of love is given are few and far between."
She looked me in the eyes and said, " I think you
want to know the truth : the truth is — it is difficult
to love perfectly at all, and most difficult to love
perfectly the living love, who is imperfect, like the
common world, till she and you love perfectly. But
it is a real love, and not romantic dreaming, that
gives life its crown of glory. Marriage — are you
enough of a musician to feel all that this implies? —
marriage is like a concert with two conductors.
All the thousand and one passions and interests of
life are crowding the orchestra, and there is endura-
ble peace if the two choruses are taught to sing in
unison. But the true harmony of the spheres, the
perfect music of love in life, is made when the two
several melodies complete each other, and a third
strain of fuller, richer, wondrous beauty rises upon
the thrice-blessed ears of those who can order two
full lives with one joint omnipotent love. Love
may last from an hour to a lifetime ; but if you
76 A DIPTTCH.
would have love in marriage, seek a v/oman who
can help you to live as well as to love."
I thought, and that day it seemed natural to think
aloud : ' ' But must not married love be equal ? and
how can a man help a woman in her own life ? "
She smiled approvingly : "When a man has mod-
esty, he is not far from the kingdom of love. You
are right that a woman is not helped to live her
own life by the mere acceptance of the devotion she
begins by offering to the man she loves. The ful-
ness of power and life comes to her as she feels that
the stay of her devotion is an inspiring force, with-
out which the fulness of power and life would be
wanting to her lover as well as to herself. But
passionate love is of no sex. I have known men
love like women, women love like men, and men
and women who loved through the whole scale of
rapture and devotion, from sullen bass to the so-
prano that fades upon the ear for utter shrillness.
It is true of all alike that they do not give love its
due by the mere acceptance of the offered gift ; un-
less their lives are fed by its acceptance, they rank
but with the unloved many, the proselytes of the
gate, to whom the entrance of the Holy of Holies is
a forbidden mystery."
I almost wondered at the complete acceptance
commanded by these subtle doctrines ; as I listened
it seemed that I was learning by the Platonic route
of reminiscence. Nothing seemed strange or doubt-
A DIPTYCH. 77
ml, and I thouGfht of Edith as I miorht of a sister
when I said, " She could have lived in unison with
a simple-hearted gentleman of her own faith."
With a faint inflection of impatience Eleanora
answ^ered, '• Are you afraid I should think you in-
constant if you forget Edith for an hour? "
And then it was my turn to smile, " Why should
I forget what has nothing ugly about it ? Your wis-
dom is reconciling me to myself and Edith ; but
tell me, what is constancy in love ? for you say, and
I believe, that love is feeble and like to die that can-
not changfe with the chanofins: seasons."
She paused longer than usual, then she rose,
paced once or twice up the room, and then passed
through the v/indow to a balcony commanding the
same view, only here we saw it stretching far round
on either hand. I followed and stood some paces
behind her, then she shivered and said, " Let me
show vou mv watch-tower." We re-entered the
house, and she led me up-stairs, through a pretty
room, half studio, half boudoir, to a circular door in
the corner.
In the corner of the house outside one saw, as it
were, half a round turret projecting beyond the
southeast angle, and the inner' half of the round
corner tower was formed by this door. I followed
her into a tiny circular cell ; all the outer wall was
window, and there was no furniture except a few
cushions on the floor and window sills. She sat
78 A DIPTYCH.
down carelessly at the foot of the embrasure, leaning
her arm on the ledge, and then she said, " I brought
you here because this is the one spot in the world
where I have never felt cross, wronged, misunder-
stood, unfortunate, unblessed." There seemed a
strange incongruity in such words on the lips of a
creature so gloriously endowed, not with beauty
only and an angel's voice, but with a wise and tol-
erant tenderness that seemed fit to sweeten countless
lives.
She went on, "I sought the protection of the
genius loci because I am more often provoked by
talk of constancy than anything else of which men
talk in ignorance. A constant love is one that
knows how to change ; for growth is change, and
living love must grow ; and there are changes which
are not growth and yet not unfaithfulness. What
is called the treachery of women is often only their
failure to respond to a change in the lover's mood,
which they could not foresee, and have no cause to
share. But the changeful ness of perfect love has
its root in this — every change in the loved one is
foreseen and every changing feeling shared. No
change within or without, on either part, can take
perfect love at unawares, or make the eternal change
its unchanging nature ; every other w^ish and hope
and passionate impulse may be called upon to change
and answer with immovable fidelity to the call, in
order that, by their death, love may renew its life,
A DIPTYCH. 79
and the one faithless change be escaped — of ceas-
ing to love the very soul and body that had once
been known, and loved as it w*as known to be. I
am angry often with those who take the name of
love m vam, because they call it inconstancy if love
is withdrawn from the detected hypocrite. Not he,
but the something better that he seemed to be, was
loved ; and even if, instead of hypocrisy in another,
there is ignorance and blindness in ourselves — even
then, when we see too late, love at all costs must be
ti*ue, and it is profaning a sacrament to ape the
sacred feeling towards one who has no right to call
it forth."
She spoke with heat, and the missing sweetness
of her tones left me free to answer instead of acqui-
escing silently. I questioned, "'Is it not a duty to
assure ourselves that we kno\v the real true nature
before we lead another to look to us for love } "
She spoke more calmly, and with a half smile.
"What is called the inconstancy of men maybe
defended too. It is often only a sign of the un-
changeableness of their ideal — they find too late
that the vision is not realized where they thought,
and they go to seek elsewhere. You ask if they are
wrong } Perhaps they are not right ; but is it then
more right never to risk a generous trust that may
justify itself in time? If it were forbidden to love
in faith, can you promise that all should have sight
enough of good to love by } No ; love must dare
So A DIPTl'CH.
— dare to hope and dare to suffer. It is easy, is it
not," she added, ''to speak of bold endurance in this
sheltered nook ? Can you wonder that I feel as if
pain and trouble could never enter here, only friend-
ship and the deep interest that springs from friendly
contact with the deepest interests of hearts like
enough our own to understand and be understood?"
I said, "This nook of yours, Signora, has been to
me a very haven of refuge from a storm that left me
rudderless. Through all my life I shall feel as if
there were some natural bond between the uplifting
of a moral incubus {did Edith love me or I her?)
and the intense luminous blue sky with the gnarled
bough and silver-tipped leaves of your olive tree
against it, framing the sunny plain and the dim
purple hills far off."
The expression of her face was no longer plain to
read. I looked at her questioningly and said, "It
is hard to have nothing to offer in return for such
fair memories."
She answered, "And you have nothing?" look-
ing at me still with a perplexing gaze, half curiosity,
expectancy, and whether invitation or reproach was
more than I could tell.
She was incomprehensibly beautiful with this
sphinx-like expression on her perfect features ; and
though I had only spoken of the background to the
vision I must remember, I promised myself to see
always her graceful form in a gray embrasure be-
A DIPTTCH. 8l
twecn me and the olive bough across the sunlit
sky. I was looking at her as one looks at an in-
animate scene of beauty, and started in confusion
when she answered my looks with a questioning
''Well?"
I answered, as I had not meant, " You have been
very good to me, Signora."
She smiled more naturally, and said, " Not very ;
less than all does not count for anything. And it
is an awesome thought how much there is room for
between men and women before they come near to
having helped each other. There are so many to
whom, once for a time, a near relation seems the
one thing needful, but there are not many to whom
it continues so all through life's length ; and such is
the force of time and worldly w^orries, that after a
few years have sped it is not so easy as you might
think to tell the difference between those who have
seen once and never. Many put to sea who dare
not cross the ocean, but I think it is not for those
who spend their lives in sight of land to speak of
the glory and loveliness of the deep."
Surely I did not hear her say — I dreamt that
it was with such a look as hers that eyes might
say — " Shall we? Nay, but let us tempt the deep
together ! " Her eyes were like those of a prophetess
beholding the manifold secrets of the deep. I knelt
and clasped her clasped hands in mine. She may
know — I cannot say — whether I felt a moment's
82 A DIPTTCH,
wild desire to tempt the deep that day, and find my
liappiness at once or never. What I said, kneeling
before her in simple adoration of her beauty and
gentle graciousness, was but a plain and stupid ac-
knowledgment of so much grace. '^ Eleanora," I
said, " your beauty is to Edith's as the summer sun
to the spring twilight, and because 3^ou have stooped
from your throne to show me kindness, all rever-
ence and worship that a man can lay at the feet of
women is due to you from me. Stay, sweet god-
dess, on your pedestal ; it is not you, it is myself I
cannot trust. It is easy to want faster than one
has strength to merit, and I reverence you too much,
Signora, to risk counting in your memory as the
hero of one more detected illusion. Do you in gen-
erous dreams think of the possibilities I dare not
aim at as of something that might have been if it
had been ours to meet, as some meet, young and
free, knowing enough, and not having felt too much
and lately to be able to launch forth upon the ocean
of life in common and limitless love "i Whether the
best there is comes to us, to me, hereafter or not
at all, let me think always of a best that might have
been ; and at least, if there is nothing on earth good
enough to make the best for you, let me be guiltless
in the day of that sad proof."
She said, ' ' Then we part now ; even my charmed
turret falls under the common doom."
And I, "No, a thousand times no. Wronged,
A DIPTYCH. 83
misunderstood, unfortunate, unblessed ; may those
dooms be ever as far from you as tliey are now ;
only, as the poet says, let us leave ' a good to die
with dim-descried ; ' and I, who have missed once
the good I sought, wish selfishly that if you miss or
do not seek that self-same good, you shall think of
me and the missing good together."
She said, "I wish my turret was the palace of
truth." Then,^with nonchalance, as she gave me
her hand in farewell, " You know your way to the
garden? "
I dared not linger after this dismissal ; so it was
but the vision of one anxious moment that I had to
bear away with me. I have never seen Eleanora
since, and as we parted then so she lives in my
memory. I think the eyes whose language I had so
often failed to read were hazel-brown ; they looked
at me with questioning sadness, half reproach, half
invitation. Why are you not worthy to stay, here
and now, to love your best forever? And yet it
was neither reproach nor invitation so much as a
dark sadness like the leaden casket, '' which rather
threatens than does promise aught." Oh, the sad-
ness that there should be an ineffable bliss on earth,
and men not bold to seize it !
All this, sadness, anger and tender sweetness, lent
an inscrutable depth to the meaning of her gaze as
I saw her leaning in the embrasure. Her dress was
of a pale greenish-blue velvet, stamped with ara-
<54 A DIPTYCH.
besque figures. I know the sleeves were short ; a
woman's wrist is sometimes strangely beautiful ; she
had opened the casement and gathered half a hand-
ful of heliotropes, which encroached from a near
balcony. The flowers rested against her dress, and
I saw nothing but her one figure, framed in the
embrasure of the window, with its tiny background
of intense blue sky, and just one olive branch, with
its narrow leaves and soft gray-green shadows,
crossing the azure, and arching over the sad, radi-
ant, enigmatic face.
I am not going to say how many years had passed
betwen these two partings and my wife's last birth-
day gift. She had seen Edith at church and Elea-
nora at the opera, and I had photographs of both.
I gave her the key of my Blue Beard's closet before
we m.arried, and I thought she had made a pretty
use of it.
Sir Alfred Osborne's portrait of my wife hangs
above the diptych. She is painted without sur-
roundings on a background of pure shadow, such as
the old masters of portraiture love. She is leaning
backwards in her chair, and her pose is so arranged
that she looks down upon the gazer, and yet her
eyes look fully into his. And her gaze has neither
sadness nor complaint, but the repose of unchang-
ing, confident tenderness. She does not seek, or
A DIPTTCH. 85
call or banish ; she makes welcome her secure pos-
session.
I do not care to show these paintings to every
one ; but in showing them to the few, I gather from
the way in which they look at all three faces whether
or no they have }'et found out for themselves that a
woman's eyes are the windows of the palace of ever-
lastinsr love.
u
lumi %m 3nh Mnnh-tu^r
S)egrt)egen and) nic^tg fc^recfUd^cr ift, atS bie Utciffen^eit I)an^
bein ju fe!^en,
— ©oetl^e.
III.
IT was the time of one of our periodical scares ;
there was a ' ' crisis " in the East, and to keep
up the spirits of a patriotic population, the troops
in London were being put through an extra quan-
tity of manoeuvring in Hyde Park. I saw no rea-
son to give up my daily morning constitutional from
the Albert Gate to the Marble Arch by a meander-
ing- diagonal and back, and I started as usual at
nine o'clock on the anniversary of a day that had
rather melancholy associations. It was a morning
to make one forget them. The leaf buds were
opening fast, but only the chestnuts had reached
their full greenness ; the elms were still tipped with
promises, and seemed to argue with us that spring
was only coming — not even yet quite here. All
distances were lost in mist, and even the brightest
lights seemed shining through it from afar. These
lights were the gilded summit of the Albert Memo-
rial, and the still white marble of the geographical
groups at its four corners. I never admired that
work of art, but Nature, here as elsewhere, now
and then casts a veil over the architect's blunder-
89
90 •' SOME ONE HAD BLUNDERED:*
ing ; and with a pale morning sky behind and
something of the dawn's rosiness between, the eye
might rest with pleasure on the glimmering lights
which but for the Memorial had not been there.
One may almost measure the pleasantness of a
walk by the unconsciousness with which we pass
through time and distance. I can recall no distinct
perception of things without or thoughts within till
ten minutes or more later, when I was past the
guard-house and upon the slanting path which leads
without a break or bend to the corner of Oxford
Street. On the right, in the open space towards
the Reformers' Oak, several bodies of troops were
skirmishing. An old soldier is tempted to give a
technical description of the movements, which were
open to criticism on several points, but that is not
my purpose. Lucy (astat. twelve), who was with
me, called out, ''Oh, uncle, look! the soldiers are
kneeling down to fire, and then they run a little
way and kneel and fire again. They are coming
this way ! whatever shall we do ? " I explained
the military expedient of seeking cover, and we
awaited the onslaught protected by one of the
hurdles put up to shelter new-sown grass. A few
foot-passengers were on the pathway here and there,
but with one or two exceptions they hurried out of
the line of advance. Lucy caught hold of my arm
as the pointed rifles, the smoke, and the rattle of
successive discharges along the line made her feel,
''SO ATE ONE HAD BLUNDERED:' 91
she said, as if wc were really '• under fire." Then
the men charged j^ast us and the hurdles ; the right
of the line was thrown forward, so that the whole
of the front rank did not cross the pathway at once.
Those nearest us were on the grass again Avhen the
order came to fire, but as we looked back I saw the
half section that w^as in the act of crossing the
gravel waver for at least three seconds, — long
enough for a volley to strike the advancing mass ;
the men hesitated whether to kneel where they w^ere
and block the foot^vay, or to break their line and
leave the passage clear.
I told Lucy to run on to school by herself. It
was only a trifle ; the men had never been on
active service, and military manoeuvres in England
are so much sacrificed to the civil interests con-
cerned, that I think the troops were only doing as
their leaders taught them in considering the con-
venience of the chance passengers at hand rather
than the regularity of their own formation. It
wasn't the mere break in the line that sent a kind of
shudder through me and made me fancy I felt my
old wound ache ; it was the fatal hesitation, the
out\vard and visible signs of the old lamentable fact
that our troops are habitually sent forward to con-
front risks and contingencies with which they have
not been prepared to deal. I have a right to speak.
Twice mv best hopes in life have been spoilt because
the army in which I had enlisted was undisciplined,
93 ''SOME ONE HAD BLUNDERED:'
and — it would be a breach of discipline to say badly
commanded — I mean not commanded enough —
left without orders in a crisis when salvation could
only be found in perfect wisdom above and perfect,
proinpt obedience below.
I have no country of my own, and as a citizen of
the world I am pained alike by the reminders that
meet me everywhere of the expanding torrent of
mischances that pours upon the devoted head of
those in whose fellowship " some one has blun-
dered." It is a hard saying that in both war and
politics it is impossible for a man to do his duty
single-handed ; he may do all he can, but he can't
do all that is set him unless his comrades help by
doing their task too. One man cannot even be wise
alone ; his wisdom fails if he does not make others
see with him, or find and join with friends enough
who see with him already.
I was a boy of nineteen when Thomas Davis died
in '45. My father died two years before ; he was a
thorough Irishman, but he died suddenly and left
no will. He was the second son of a rich contractor,
w^ho had invested the fortune he made during the
war in estates in England and Ireland. My uncle,
the eldest son, who held the English property, was
a stiff Conservative : he was my guardian, and
having no sons of his own, his wish vs^as to make
me English enough to be his heir. I had matricu-
lated at Trinity a month before my father died, and
''SOME ONE HAD BLUNDERED:' 93
had a hard fight to be allowed to stay there. My
guardian insisted on Oxford, or at least Cambridge,
if I was bent on mathematics. I got my way
on this point by invoking my father's w^sh, but in
return, by what I thought a small revenge, my
allowance was cut down to the minimum on which
a man could live, so that all at once I was left
powerless to help with funds the national mo\'e-
ment of which my father had been a keen sup-
porter, and to which he had allowed me, as a boy,
to contribute as I pleased in my own name.
Between shame and fury I told the story to Davis,
raging at the English uncle, and complaining that I
was helpless and useless to him now. I was half
comforted, half humiliated, by the compassionate,
tolerant smile with which he said, "I wish we had
an honest man in earnest for every guinea you
would have liked to give us ; " and then with frank
courtesy he added, "You bring us one to begin
with." Such words from 3^oung Ireland's chief
made bo}^s and men loyal ; but Davis died before
his time for leading came, and I, a disappointed
man, turn faithless now and wonder whether, even
if he had lived, he would have struck out a policy
such as IrishiTien could have followed in union to
success.
While he lived we had hopes ; he was waiting
his opportunity. Opportunity comes to those who
know how to wait, and we felt certain that in due
94 ''SOME ONE HAD BLUNDERED:'
time he would bid us follow him to seize the oppor-
tunity. We wxre young and eager, and hoped the
call Avould be a call to arms. Vears afterwards it
was with as much envy as good-w^ill that I watched
Garibaldi's deliverance of the two Sicilies: young
Ireland would have immortalized itself by death or
victory if a campaign like that had been possible to
us then. Davis was for neglecting no chance of
peaceful constitutional agitation, but I doubt now
w^hether he realized how narrowly w^e v\^ere hemmed
in by alternative impossibilities. He thought we
should have been ready to fight as a last resource,
and held that O'Connell was feeble if not false when
he failed to stand by his "Defiance." He did not
see that men are only ready to fight a losing battle
to the death when death or victory are their only
chances. Ireland would have had a better chance
if England had been more like Austria ; that is why
so many Irishmen hate English good intentions
more than anything else English.
Davis welcomed every small concession. Ireland
free and prosperous, he thought, had less to fear
from bad government than Ireland prostrate and
pauperized ; and yet, if there was ever to be an
appeal to arms, would farmers with a fair lease turn
out to fight while red-coats spoiled the homestead }
When a nation takes to arms, it has been goaded by
intolerable, ubiquitous oppression. I have but one
thing to say in extenuation of the English dominion
''SOME ONE HAD BLUNDERED." 95
ill Ireland : it has never been so uniformly and
systematicallv cruel as to open the gateway of de-
liverance made by a nation's passionate despair.
Some tyrann}' breeds heroes ; we were crushed by a
yoke shameful to bear, inglorious to try and break.
It did not seem so then, but I know now we could
not have roused the country for a real war of insur-
rection, and short of warfare we had no resource in
reach but to follow Davis' counsel and continue
lawful agitation.
But this was accepting the Union. Had we
among us any statesmen able to see and strong
enough to make their following believe that to de-
liver Ireland an Irish politician must first revenge
her wrongs by conquering her conquerer and seiz-
ing a front place in the Imperial Legislature ? We
did not see things in that light ; we thought it was
a fine appeal to moral force when, to save the lives
of our docile mob, we stood with folded arms, pro-
testing calmly while our lawful liberties were over-
borne by force. 'Twas a schoolboy ish kind of pat-
riotism ; Italian schoolboys were happier in dying
— even though some died in vain — upon the field of
battle ; and yet we were not to blame for our shabby
fate. It was a part of the situation that political
uprightness and daring by itself brought no crown
of martyrdom, and who can believe in the magna-
nimity of a rebel who runs no risks.? And then
in desperation and defiance some courted such risks
96 ''SOME ONE HAD BLUNDERED:*
as they could find, and instead of a crown of mar-
tyrdom In an Austrian fortress, found the disgrace
that a lodging in clean English gaols reserves for
rioters or incendiaries. Our roughest roughs would
have made good patriots in less smooth and civilized
days, but I doubt whether they were ripe for the
enthusiasm on behalf of peaceful measures without
which the wisest leader is but an idle voice crying
in the wilderness.
Anyway, the end was, that it all came to nothing,
I wasn't the last to leave the sinking ship. I had
trusted Davis more than any of the rest, and when
he died I felt as if we were a crew without a captain.
Loud counsels were plenty, but none of them seemed
so wise and helpful that I, who felt a youth's long-
ing to follow some one with enthusiasm, could give
myself up to follovs^ing any one of them. I had
some thoughts of shooting Peel and blowing my
own brains out afterwards, but even that expedient
seemed a doubtful promise. What I did was to
write and ask my guardian if he would buy me a
commission in the th, which was just ordered
on foreign sei*vice. My uncle gave a delighted con-
sent ; some one had told him of the verses of mine
Duffy was good-natured enough to print in the A^a-
tion^ and he was overjoyed at the thought, of getting
me out of the country in some other character than
that of a convict.
From that day to this I have never revealed the
'^SOME ONE HAD BLUNDERED:* 97
secret thought that urged what my friends thought
ahiiost disloyal desertion. I saw our cause was
ho^Deless then. When we asked ourselves if Peel
could be induced to make this or that concession,
the answer again and again would be, "Whatever
Peel might say, the Duke would be dead against
it." But Arthur, Duke of Wellington, was an
Irishman. I thought, "Let a loyal Irishman win
another W^aterloo, and instead of a dukedom ask for
his wages leave to carry three Irish Bills." With
the ardor of a disappointed lover I threw myself
upon the study of fortification and tactics, and as I
read at the antipodes of one fiiilure after another,
and then of my country's misery, famine and pesti-
lence added to every other woe, I still held to the
wild ambition of earning in the English army the
power and the right to serve and save Ould Ireland.
It was a boyish dream, and as years went by, I
thought, no doubt, less and less of that distant end,
and grew more and more absorbed in the interests
of my profession. When we were ordered to the
Crimea, I thought more of the pleasure of engaging
in real, scientific warfare, of the chance of making a
known name for myself, than of the chance, years
afterwards of being " sent for to the Queen." Our
regiment was the first to land, and thenceforward
the army was my nation.
In Ireland I had had to watch the ruin of a cause
without knowing what to do to save it. It was
90 '^ SOME ONE HAD BLUNDERED:'
worse now. I knew, at least in part, what needed
to be done, but I was powerless even to do all my
own duty well, since to do it all would have in-
volved doing also that of two or three adjoining
functionaries whose bungling blocked my way.
What came to be known as the breakdown of the
commissariat was but a sample of the official incom-
petence which permeates the whole national admm-
istration. Clever officials would have pacified Ire-
land as a mere matter of routine. The English
Constitution had need be good and the English
people docile, since the one has to be administered
and the other governed by an amalgam of clerks
and amateurs. Irresponsibility and impotence for
good, turn our permanent officials into clerks, while
party politicians come into office untrained in any-
thing but Parliamentary debate. When adminis-
tration was half as difficult and complicated as it is
now, paternal statesmen educated their sons for
public life and acted towards them as if the art of
ruling could be taught. Now a young man is tossed
to sink or swim in an election, and not one in ten
is able to forget the electioneering tone when he is
landed in the House, to realize that members are
not constituents, and that there is no connection at
all between the practical importance of measures
and their estimated influence on a personal reputa-
tion. I for one believe that a trained and able
politician would be followed for his measures' sake,
'^ SOME ONE HAD BLUNDEREDr 99
if they were good, without having to labor straight-
way to conciliate the sweet voices of his colleagues ;
but lawful modesty bids men without training or
experience take a deprecatory tone, and so there is
and end of government.
I am digressing, but it is more seemly for a sol-
dier to rail at statesmen than at his own commanders,
and I have seen since then at work in peace all the
causes of our needless discomfiture in those days of
war. I am not going to rake up the stories of old
blundering. I wasn't reckoned with the croakers
then, and onl}' risked a little chaff now and again
by hinting at safe rules for doing what our gallant
young officers liked to leave to the moment's inspi-
ration.
On a spring evening in 1855, a party of us had
been entertaining some yachtsmen at dinner, and
after they left us, we still stayed smoking in the
moonlight to enjoy the summer-like coolness. Col-
onel and an officer of the staff were present,
and somehow we drifted into an argument. Per-
haps I took more trouble to say all I meant, in hopes
that some of it would, if I convinced my men,
reach headquarters at second-hand.
I argued that nothing ought to be uncertain in
war ; that a general ought to be able to calculate
by instinct what each movement would cost him
in lives, and to risk no step that hadn't a clear pur-
pose, which could be served no cheaper way. I
1 oo - 5 OME ONE HA D BL UNDER ED. "
said ignorance m such a matter was criminal ; it
was murder for a man to march his troops at random
under fire ; every life lost in vain, ay, and every
needless wound inflicted, ovight to be felt, as it was,
a blot of ignominy on the I Leader's fame.
O'Callaghan, who had exchanged from a regiment
at the Cape, in order, as ho said, not to miss the fun,
said I wanted to bring in a mean commercial spirit
of economy — a man who was good for anything
didn't count his own risks like that. How could a
general who counted them have any dash or bold-
ness.? I threw down my cigar in fierce disgust.
If generals were asses, that was no reason why we
should say it was a general's whole duty to bray
aloud. What right has a man to the glory of com-
manding English troops, if he hasn't the wit to be
brave for himself, and at the same time cautious not
to waste their bravery ? Then I told a story of the
only sole command I had ever held. It was in
South Africa, and we took a Kafir kraal with the
loss of just ten men killed and wounded. I asked
O'Callaghan how he would feel if, after calculating
how to bring his men up so as to have them under
fire for the shortest time, he caught himself at once
in some dull blunder w^hich doubled their exposure }
I knew all about the family history of the four men
killed that day. If one of them had been killed by
my default, should not I have felt myself a murderer
disgraced.? Any of us can see and feel this in a
''SOME ONE HAD BLUNDERED:' lOl
small affair ; does it alter the inherent responsibility
of office that its holder is too dull even to know
what are the consequences of his own neglect ?
I dared not mention instances of whole companies
that had been sacrificed — halted without cover
under fire, merely because their leader didn't quite
know^ what to do with them next. Even a general
complaint seemed too like an accusation against
familiar names, and with a feeling that I had gone
too far, and to turn the subject, I expressed a wish
that the military colleges would do a little more to
familiarize their students with the kind of calcula-
tion they have to make in practice. In Africa, I
used to get my men to practise charging on the
level, up and down hill, and over broken ground,
so that I could tell w^ithin three seconds how^ long
they would be covering a strange reach of ground.
Why should not our cadets be practised in judging
pace and distance by the eye ?
The Major, who loves sport as much as he hates
science, took up his parable here, and narrated
wondrous feats of sight and judgment by Scotch
keepers and Canadian trappers, tales which seemed
to carry so plain a moral that I didn't think it
needed saying, " If these men can do so much for a
livelihood and sport, we should not reckon less to
make a soldier's duty." But as we turned In,
O'Cailaghan put his hand on my shoulder by way
I02 " SOME ONE HAD BLUNDERED:*
of encouragement or consolation, while he laughed,
" Old boy ! so the Major shut you up for once ! "
The next day we had a little brush with the
enemy. It was not one of the famous battles, and
I will give no clue for identifying the affair. Let it
suffice to say that my company was stationed under
cover in reserve, while our guns tried to silence a
small battery the Russians had opened during the
night. I v^^as glad of the job, for I knew we should
cany the batteiy easily, and a little triumph like
that does wonders for the troops' health and spirits ;
but my satisfaction was cut short. The French were
making a demonstration on the other side, and a
regiment had just passed behind the battery, but
within musket range of it, on the way to reinforce
the Russian advanced posts. I noticed that the fire
of our guns began to slacken, and looking from them
to the enemy, I saw another regiment following on
the same line. They should have doubled their fire,
lengthening the range now and then, so as to drop a
shot into the thick green mass. Instead, the slack-
ening fire was interpreted by the order brought me
to charge the guns. I asked for nothing better than
to charge the guns ; but was it possible did
not see that just before we reached the battery the
advancing regiment would be within range ; five
minutes later it would have passed.'' We were still
concealed ; but could imagine that if we
showed ourselves the Russians would be even
^'SOME ONE HAD BLUNDERED:' 103
greater fools than we were and fail to greet us with
a volley in flank ?
I had no choice but to obey without delay ; even
if I had had courage enough to seem slow to act on
the order to advance, my dela}' would only have
caused a choice of evils, for the Russian battery
re-opened fire the moment our guns stopped to leave
the field for infantry to charge. I would do all I
could to spare my men, but when it came to a ques-
tion between them and others, they and I were one,
and we claimed the post of honor. When the
order reached me, I stopped no longer than it takes
for the eye to turn once to right and left ; there
was no help for it ; I was blameless in the matter ;
and casting all care behind, I gave myself up to the
delight of martial passion.
It did not last long — what keen pleasure ever
does ? — but while it lasted I was glad ; the pride of
life was in my veins. I am inclined to question
whether those who have never led a forlorn hope,
know what glorious gladness is : one has left life
behind ; all life's triumphs are summed up in the
feeling that one rushes gladly to encounter death ;
all the fierce selfishness of animal passion, which
we quell as may be in the days of peace, finds an
outlet here, and feeds our delight in the tumult and
savageness of war ; and yet we do well to rejoice in
our rage, for we charge at the call of duty, and pay
with our life-blood for the moment's glory.
I04 '^ SOME ONE HAD BLUNDERED:'
We had to charge first over broken ground and
then in a slant uphill ; the danger from the flank
fire came in the last part of the advance. I gave
the w^ord for a rapid double, and as the pace was
uniform uphill, the square, formed by our double
line grew^ into a blunt diamond ; I led the way at
the foremost corner, keeping my eye upon the near-
ing battery. I had nothing to do with the green-
coated mass upon the left ; it was nothing to me
whether they knew their business or no ; my business
was to reach the guns alive, if they and destiny
would let me. I looked back and was pleased ;
notwithstanding the pace, our lines were almost
even. There was a white fan-shaped patch of
cirrhus vapor on the clear blue sky that met my
eye in front ; perhaps I should not have known that
I saw it but for what happened next. A sound like a
thunderclap struck me in the face. I felt blind and
shaken ; I remember no other feeling.
It was three in the afternoon when we charged ;
the sun had set, but its redness had not quite left
the sky when I woke to consciousness. I felt no
pain, only a giddy faintness, till I tried to move,
when an unearthly pain went through my side,
followed by a soothing sense of warmth, and then
blessed unconsciousness. When I woke again the
moon was running wildly through thin clouds ;
heaped-up fleecy masses swept along, but it was not
like the sky I knew ; it is one thing to walk erect
''SOME ONE HAD BLUNDERED." 105
and give the stars their names : as I lay prostrate
on the ground, with burning lips and a pain I dared
not examine lest worse came of it, thus lying, with
nothing sane but sight about me, it seemed as if I
did not see the human sky : figures and shades were
there ; it melted into a dim travesty of the Sistine
Chapel ceiling. Adam's face looked out threaten-
ingly ; a singing in my ears seemed to say, " Fallen,
fallen, fallen ;" and as in broken dreams one catches
one's self saying half a sentence that has no meaning,
my brain took up the cry unthinkingly, and I found
myself repeating, as if it wxre a thought, " To fall is
a blunder," " Falling, falling down ;" and answering
to the words was a sea-sick feeling of sinking, sink-
ing through the earth, w^hile overhead the moon and
clouds whirled round, now seeming to be part of me,
mingling with the kaleidoscopic colors my blood-
less eyes saw in vacancy, and then again vanishing
in distance as night fell upon the nen'eless limbs.
Weapons have changed since Homer, but dying is
much the same as in the " Iliad."
Again I woke : it was dark ; my limbs were stiff
and chill ; I felt as if floating alone in the darkness ;
the hard ground touched me like a blow, but the
darkness above and below seemed equally near,
equally far. There was something maddening in
the sense of a possessing pain when every other
perception was stunned or blinded. I saw and
heard and felt nothing without, only wuthin an
lo6 '• SOME ONE HAD BLUNDERED:'
agony of pain and terror. I was trying again to
argue as I had the night before, but in the deHrium
of the wound fever I was haunted by a thought that,
if I could only find the mathematical formula for
the two rates of advance, and find it quickly, I
should save the lives of Hincks and Bendall.
Heaven only knows what put the names of these
poor fellows (who got off scatheless, by the way)
into my wandering brain ; but all through that
night, and through weeks of fever afterwards, my
ravings were all meant to explain how, if we could
only measure the angle AEI, our men would be as
safe as billiard-balls.
The night was haunted with uglier spectres than
these. I would advise those who risk an intimacy
with cold lead to keep their conscience clean.
Nightmares of pain, and fright, and horror are
bad enough ; madness itself would be a pleasant
refuge from the awful terror when ill deeds rise up
like swelling phantoms, filling, filling the whole of
space, and drawing closer, nearer, till their threat-
ening touch dissolves into a thrill of pain, and we
awake from black unearthly visions into the more
bearable consciousness of " real night," and a human
body impaled upon a scrap of lead. An optical
delusion which no doctor has ever yet explained to
me added to the horrid terror of these hours. In
the moonlit twilight I saw the hillside above me,
and the surface of the ground, every tuft of grass,
^\SOME ONE HAD BLUNDERED." 1 07
each loose stone, the scattered cartridges, and the
distorted figure of a fallen soldier — everything in
sight rose from the ground ; it seemed to stand up
in relief a foot or eighteen inches from the real
solid earth. I dared not open my eyes for fear of
the ghostly mirage. I dashed my arm out in frantic
endeavor to dispel the vision by a touch, and fainted
again w^ith the exertion and pain.
The wounded w^ould have been cared for sooner
but for the ill success which rewarded our ill-timed
attack. The volley which knocked me down put
an end to the work of many better fellows ; the
rest kept on gallantly and reached the battery, only
to find themselves met hand-to-hand with equal
numbers from the infantry resei've. Our loss was
heavy. O'Callaghan fought like a hero, and with a
broken arm led oft^ the sui"\'ivors, w^ho retreated,
firing so steadily that little further harm was done
them. But the battery remained with the enemy
(for that night only) ; and so it was not till the
moon had set that surgeons were allowed to go for-
ward with a party to bring in the wounded. I w^as
unconscious when they came, and, with few inter-
vals, for some weeks afterwards. It was in one of
the intei*\^als I heard the surgeons say, in language
which, unluckily, I was anatomist enough to under-
stand, that my wound was one to make active ser-
vice impossible for life. I think the discovery let
lo8 ''-SOME ONE HAD BLUNDERED:*
me in for aiiother turn of fever ; but that's neither
here nor there.
After two or three months I was ordered home.
General and the staff officer who had been
with us on the evening before our mishap came to
see me before I left. The latter must have men-
tioned my tirade, for General observed benig-
nantly that he was always glad to hear studious
young officers reported for gallant conduct ; books
were all very well, but (this to me) " Real service
is a very different thing, as no doubt you have dis-
covered." I felt guilty of a breach of discipline as
I replied gravely, " Very different. General."
Of course my career was at an end : it was years
before I was able to walk, and the least exertion
would displace the imperfectly united fracture. I
spent some years in Italy, and saw Garibaldi enter
Naples, but no new ambition came to take the place
of those that had been balked. Few men are able,
when their life is spoilt, to gather up the fragments
and make a fresh start : I vs^asn't one of the few.
My uncle wanted me to go into Parliament, but I
didn't care to be there unless as a power, and I had
neither health nor energy to set myself to obtain
influence in other ways than the one which took my
boyish fancy. I did not even live in Ireland. I got
an honest man to look after the estates, and so long
as they were not mismanaged I felt all was done
for them that I could do. I was unfit for the count-
'^SOME ONE HAD BLUNDERED." 109
less labors of an 'improving landlord;" it was
better to attempt nothing than to attempt and fail,
and I felt it was too difficult, unless I could have
put all my heart and strength in it. I didn't care
enough about small local amendments to be able to
do that ; it was Ireland I wanted to benefit, not my
own estate ; and though the latter was a fractional
part of Ireland, I refused to own any obligation to
sink myself in the lesser task when fate had so
maliciously cut me off from the pleasant cherishing
of wider hopes.
Now that it is quite too late for any reflections to
clamor about being put in practice, I am willing to
admit that part of the judgment that falls on nations
and men for blundering is, that the blunder which
makes a neighbor's task more difficult acts too fre-
quently on his mind as an excuse. Who knows,
after all, whether I was a heaven-born general ? It
strikes me, if I had been, failing an army, I should
have made myself some other following. Failing a
war commissariat to organize, I should have devel-
oped supply and demand for new industries in
Clare. I take my share of responsibility for my
own omissions ; but, after all, the leaders, whose
blunders threw me out of work, took the initiative
in leading me into the temptation through which
I fell. " Blundering is falling, falling down." If I
had been quite sane during that night upon the
field, I might have said, " The man who falls into a
no ''SOME ONE HAD BLUNDERED."
blunder pulls his neighbor down, and every fresh
fall is a weight dragging on the steps of those who
walk erect, and crushing the fallen into further
depths."
For God's sake, let men make a conscience of not
blundering at their work — especially at the work
of ruling men and handling troops !
likiimm^r llnmu
•* Why, just
Unable to fly, one swims ! "—Browning.
IV.
I KNOW a man who has been laughed at, off and
on, these thirty years, for the one act of his life
that he has never regretted. If you want a true
story, I can tell you his.
Thirty 3'ears ago Nice was less like Paris than
now, but ^^y fetes were held at a certain villa, and
\x\y hero had been at one of them. Something in
Ariadne's eyes emboldened him to spend the night
in trespassing in villa gardens whence he could get
a glimpse of the window he thought was hers ; and
by the time the sun had risen, his courage had risen
too, to the level of pen, ink and paper. It wasn't
easy to see the eldest daughter of a large family
alone, and he had a not unnatural dread of having
his romance spoilt by some prosaic interruption, or
turned into an undying jest by the mischief of an
enfant tei'rzble. In a letter at least no sentence
risked being cut short in an unfinished caress. So
he wrote, but waited self-denyingly till nine o'clock
to send his messenger with the note, lest Ariadne
should still be sleeping after that intoxicating waltz.
The messenger was long returning. A whole long
"3
114 MIDSUMMER NOON.
hour, and minutes over. Arnold did not know that
a mortal hour could be so long. Would she be angry
with his presumption ? He could not help writing
some of the passionate love he felt ; if — oh, terror !
— if she did not care for him, would she not resent,
would she not have a right to resent, his daring to
love her so passionately without her leave? But
then, too, surely, she was not one to give her love
unasked ; he must win her by patient, passionate
iove and pleading. How should she care for him ?
what was there in him for her to care for except
his love? had he let his love plead urgently enough,
with all the eloquence of his despairing longing?
Had he said too little — not enough to let her see
what a desert his life must be if she could not give
a gracious hearing to his suit? Had he said too
much ? Though life would be desolate without her,
God forbid that her life should be spoilt out of her
pure compassion — she should choose freely — he
shrank with horror from the tyranny of threatening :
love me or I cannot live ; but his thought in writing
had been : darling, love me ; how can I live, darling,
without your love ! and yet for her sake he could
not wish to be loved for j^ity. The wretched letter
— he loved her so well ; but how was she to guess
it when he had said nothing that he wished, when
what he had said was all wrong and foolish, and
seemed now to mean everything that was furthest
from his loving thoughts?
MIDSUMMER NOON. 1 15
But then, again, she was so sweet and gentle,
every word and deed found charitable interpreta-
tion in her open heart. Surely she would under-
stand and not think ill of one w^ho loved her — she
who understood people so easily would surely un-
derstand how much. But then, why had she sent
no word of answer.? She must know how he was
waiting for his fate. Was it possible that she
would not write? would she meet him without
writing? would she neither write nor meet him?
He watched the minute hand go round ; his hopes
died sixty deaths — there was no answer stilL How
long must he wait? if he started for Villa Franca
and her answer come after he was gone? if he
started too late, waiting for a message, and she was
gone to meet him and he was not there? What
cruelty might not be expected from fate, when even
she was cruel and had not vouchsafed one word to
comfort his despair?
He was leaning his head upon his hands in such
deep despair, that Luigi, with a note, had knocked
twice — it was a quarter past ten — before Arnold
started up to bid him enter. He had a long story
to tell : they had sent him from the villa to the
yacht — (she wrote in haste, and the soft pencil lines
were blurred — he saw nothing but " Your loving"
at the bottom) ; — the yacht was anchored out at
sea, the young ladies were being rowed out to it in
a boat — (was he dreaming, or did this line read
Il6 MIDSUMMER NOON,
" Yes, yes, yes " ?) Giuseppe said the yacht would
sail long before a rowboat from the shore could
reach her, that the English milord would be back
to-day or to-morrow, and my business might wait
so long — (Arnold had neither heard nor read ; he
could not read her secret words with his chattering
rascal's eye upon him ; he must hear the story and
let him go) — "And then La Gimella heard and
said — my sister's son is going to marry his daughter,
and they are all clever boatmen — he was to take
fish and poultry to the yacht before she started, and
he offered to do my business for me. But I am
most discreet, Signor " — (confound you !) — " and
said that I had something of importance to deliver
to the cook^ who is my cousin's brother-in-law ; and
then La Gimella took me in his boat, and I gave the
Signorina the letter as I passed her ; and then quite
openly, when she read it, she called me to her, and
gave me thanks, and the sails were set and the
Gimella shouted for me to follow to the boat ; but
the gracious and noble young lady wrote in pencil
hastily, and bade me give this to my master and
say they would be on shore again at night, but she
could not say the hour."
Arnold swore one or two grateful oaths and bade
the messenger begone. He threw himself again
upon the scrap of paper and read: — " Dearest, I
have no time to think how to say yes, yes, yes ; the
yacht is ready to sail — if I could answer your letter
MID S UMMER NO ON. 117
as it desen-es ! As we pass Villa Franca, how I
shall long to be with you there ! No more. Addio I
I am called. Your loving — Ariadne."
Nothing seems so incredible as the supreme hap-
piness one has hardly dared to hope for, because
one hopes with such a desperate longing. Arnold
felt as if it were all too ^ood to be true, till he
realized that twelve hours or even more might pass
before he .could see her — say all he had not said,
and learn with his own ears to believe that his dar-
ling would be gracious. So tremble between joy
and pain the souls in purgatory when the message
comes for them to enter paradise to-morrow. Who
can count the hours of the day that stand between
us and heaven ?
One thing at least he might do ; and hasting as
if time were short, still in his rough undress, he
repaired to the jeweller's shop, kept by a well-
known Roman exile. I will not describe the ring
he brought away with him, for his wife wears it
always to this day, and I have never seen another
like it ; every one may think of the ring with which
he would choose to celebrate his golden wedding :
the ring itself had a chameleon-like mutability, and
few who have seen it describe it the same way.
Arnold had prayed her to bring the children towards
Villa Franca in their walk, and then, when he met
them, to turn away into the olive gardens, while
the little ones gathered narcissus and anemones.
Ii8 MIDSUMMER NOON.
He felt as if he must keep tryst with his hopes and
wear out the hours there.
Had her spirit been there before him ? the world
never wore such a face before. He walked on air ;
it seemed as if the world's brilliancy streamed in
through every sense ; not his eyes alone, but every
eager limb felt a vision of the glory that lit up the
bright young world. Was this Italy or Hellas, or
the very garden of the gods? Truly, he said, she
is a daughter of the gods, and I by her love have
left the cold world behind. He had not slept : day
had dawned upon chill anxiety ; now, as he stretched
his limbs out in the generous sunlight, he smiled
aloud and reproached the school-books for never
having told him that the waters of Lethe were so
warm. He bathed in the warm air and marvelled,
as every care fell from him ; what had happened to
the glossy carouba tree by the wayside to make it
look to him like the glorified spirit of a tree under
which gods might rest? Something of a leaden,
earthy load was gone from his spirit and the joyous
nature round ; the shadows of the dark foliage had
a green radiance which the dazzling sky could not
extinguish.
Was the sky overhead blue or white ? A bend
in the road let the sea come near, and the water was
a deep, dazzling blue, but all the sky was ablaze
with sunlight. He thought, " When the islands of
the blest want a constitution and a drapeau^ I will
MIDSUMMER NOON. 1 19
be their king and choose this tricolor — the blue,
white, and green of the heaven-bright South, where
the sea is as pure as the sky, the sky invisible like
the far-darting Sun-god, and the brown earth veiled
in a flickering mantle of silvery and purple green."
Arnold's swinging walk came to a sudden pause ;
just off the roadway footprints led up a little knoll
where a white goat was grazing. He threw him-
self upon the warm ground, dizzy with the over-
whelming sense of rapture. She was trying to read
Petrarch yesterday ; was it only yesterday he had
translated for her : —
The sea, hath not so many creatures 'mid its waves,
Nor there above the orbit of the moon
Did ever night behold as many stars :
The coppice harbors not as many birds,
Nor field bore ever grasses manifold,
As are the thoughts that crowd my heart — my love I
And he had read this yesterday, when he knew not
what it meant. Yesterday's fulness was a barren
hunger, its wisdom unfeeling ignorance ; only to-
day he knew and was overwhelmed with the mar-
vels of his knowledge. " O Ariadne ! Ariadne ! "
he murmured half aloud : " Petrarch wrote of what
he little knew ; better men than I have thought
they loved, but believe me, darling, none ever loved
as I do ; for you, my sweet, were then unborn, and
who could be beloved as you are ? " A lark rose,
I20 MIDSUMMER NOON,
and he watched it circling into the sunlit blue.
" y^<^go augeletto che cantando vai^ tell me," he
said, " is it not true that every song and sigh of birds
and lovers until now has been but a prophecy and
archetype of the love that waits on Ariadne ! " The
bird made no answer save with the trills that
vanished into space, and the soft silence came to
Arnold like assent, and he hid his face with love
and shame. " O Ariadne ! Ariadne ! what have I
done to be crowned with happiness above that of
all the worthy lovers of old time ? "
Something like a tear stood in his eye. There
is no brighter light beneath the heavens than the
twinkling flashes with which sea and sun hold con-
verse ; but the surpassing brilliancy of that bright-
ness is known only to the few who have felt it
flash upon their souls through a love-born tear.
Arnold was looking out to sea, and he smiled like
a happy child at the forgiving brightness. And
again his senses rested upon the melting harmony
of gray and green ; the downy olive shimmered in
the sunlight, and its silver glitter made the calm
gray stone pines show green ; while close by, the
wild myrtle and trailing caper and the overhanging
carouba with its bursting pods bore witness that
flower and seed time had their turn in Arcady.
Arnold was half ashamed of the vehemence of
his passion. He walked on more soberly, and re-
flected with pleasure that he had the other day
MIDSUMMER NOON. 131
'defended Petrarch from the charge of exaggeration
and unreality ; people had laughed at him, taking
for irony the grave earnestness with which he said
Laura's lover was the most literally truthful of im-
mortal poets. He thought the discovery was cred-
itable to his intelligence in that former state of
existence to which it seemed to belong, and in
virtue of it he would try to import into his new life
the charitable hope and difficult belief in a propor-
tion sum ; all and everything that his own Ariadne
was to him he would hope and try to think fair
ladies heretofore had been to the few faithful lovers
who had worshipped their loves as he would.
But at all events there was no one in the world
like her to-day. Was she thinking of him and
pitying his weary exile? The world was fair be-
cause she graced it ; he felt as if her absence were
putting out the light and glory. He wandered
along the solitary promontory. Under the olive
trees a reflection of the heavenly tricolor smiled at
him. Starry blue anqmones and white narcissus
mingled with the scanty grass : his fancy gathered
the whole enclosure into one vast bouquet, and he
sighed because he could not kneel to give it into
her hands. Then the path led through orange trees
under which no wild flowers grew, and then it came
out upon something like an open heath ; the ground
was bare, but sea flowers grew here and there
among the stones. The sun poured down ; he felt
123 MIDSUMMER NOON,
the rays fall like dry, welcome rain. It was the
year's shortest day, and he thought, " My life's
winter is past and gone, and spring was gone be-
fore it, and our love can know no autumn of decay ;
there stretch before us long years of midsummer
delight."
The beryl-colored ripples of the tideless sea were
washing the little sandy inlet below him. He said
to himself, " I wonder from how far out ships see
the lighthouse." He tried to keep from himself
like a secret the irrepressible thought, " From the
point Ferrat I shall see the yacht." The sun
shone upon her sails and the light wind bore her
smoothly over the twinkling blue. He was ready to
upbraid Ariadne for letting the sun shine when he
was not there to see it ; it seemed as if all the light
he saw was a long way off. The yacht's head was
turned out to sea. Unreasonable as it was, he felt a
chill of disappointment. He was a monster of un-
reasonableness. Of course she could not help it ;
he must endure his fate like a man. It was hard,
but he would endure it manfully, and he tried to fit
to music Hawes' couplet —
For though the daye be never so long,
At last the belle ringeth to evensong.
Let it be midsummer all the year round ; but as
men pray against an imagined danger, he was ready
to pray it might not be always noon.
MIDSUMMER NOON. 123
He thought of himself as a state prisoner, with a
long term of solitary confinement to ser\'e out.
Clearly the only escape from madness and despair
was to begin seriously with some earnest thought.
He began to think of Ariadne, and as he thought,
wild waves of longing drowned his soul again. He
stretched out his arms, and she was not there ; the
flood of longing left him stranded on the bare, stony
ground. He felt like a fish stranded by the tide
upon a barren shore ; the parched earth was bare
and desolate ; of what use was he or it.'' " I wish,"
he murmured, " Ariadne, I wish there were nothing
in the world but thy deamess, and whatsoever may
be dear to thee, and my soul gasping thirstily
towards the infinite ocean of thy dearness, where
its gaspings drown themselves, and there is nothing
left but thee I " But there was his love left still, and
it stretched out covetous arms after the departing
yacht. The fish he felt like was that strange vessel
landed by the fisherman in the " Arabian Nights."
When the seal of the lid was taken ofi', the im-
prisoned Djinn rose up like smoke ; he stretched
himself out, tall, and with expanding arms, like the
thoughts with which Arnold now swooped down
upon the yacht, where Ariadne stood by her father
on the bridge.
As the yacht weighed anchor, Ariadne had taken
refuge in the cabin to read at leisure the letter of
which she had hardly been able to grasp the words
J 24 MIDSUMMER NOON.
in her haste to send an answer before it was too
late. The yacht had made some way before she
appeared on deck again. The boys laughed at her
silence. Lord Moidart was deep in maps and con-
sultation with the skipper. Presently he came aft,
and asked Ariadne cheerfully if she and the chil-
dren would like to stay out for a week's cruise and
run on to Corsica ; the weather was fair, and if they
signalled a home-bound boat, the mother would
know where they were and not be anxious. Poor
Ariadne ! She had been planning how, in the
course of a long hour's quiet talk with her father,
she would gradually prepare him for the momen-
tous news (which, by the way, was no news at all,
either to Arnold's mother or Lord Moidart, who
had watched complacently the innocent course of
their children's first romance) , and now she could
only feel foolishly unable to say a word, unless her
blank looks spoke. Lord Moidart was still young,
and in his diplomatic career he had had to read
harder riddles than Ariadne's transparent face.
He made confession easy to her : how would she
like the cruise if they picked up Arnold first .^ The
yacht was put about, and Ariadne whispered, she
never quite knew why, " Papa, wx had better land
at Villa Franca first."
Arnold could not bear the sight of the receding
yacht ; it was his first trouble, and he set himself
to bear it like a man. He turned away from the
MIDSUMMER NOON. 1 25
dazzling south, and resting his head in the shade of
a stunted wild laurel bush, he looked west^vard,
past the castle and old town of Nizza. to the low
line of the Antibes ; he looked past all these to his
English home, where the sun never shone as now,
but where Ariadne — was it possible? — Ariadne
would one day walk by his side. Do what he
would, his thoughts still circled round. He could
not dwell on thoughts of her without the upspring-
ing of a w^ild desire ; then he set himself to desire
nothing she could not grant, and, however soberly
his thoughts began again, ere long they ended with
outstretched arms and a wailing cry within. He
could bear it no longer, and started up to see the
yacht once more, even if it were only as a distant
speck, bearing his love away. He looked ; was it
a too happy dream .^^ The yacht was nearer, the
sun glancing on her sails ; she was making for the
harbor. Could it mean — he dared not guess —
what could it mean .^ No ! she was anchoring far
out, the wind was against her entering the harbor
— ^vas anything amiss? They were lowering a
boat. Arnold stood with every limb intent, like
Mercury waiting Jove's word to fly ; he watched
with straining eyes. What sailor could wear white
and blue? Ariadne, by heaven! Ariadne is in
the boat, and it comes to fetch her lover !
Do not think my hero mad. He paused to think
about his dress ; a white flannel shirt is none the
126 MIDSUMMER NOON.
worse for water, and the sun and sea only made his
yellow hair curl tighter ; he did not wish to reach
her looking like a gray drowned rat, but somehow
it never crossed his mind as possible that he should
wait on shore till the boat came nearer. He pro-
ceeded very orderly to take off his coat and boots ;
he folded her letter and put it in his tin fusee case ;
he slipped the ring on his little finger, and, after
dipping his head in the sea, he stuck a sprig of
flowering myrtle behind his ear. He waded among
pink flowering rocks, and the delicate medusae
swam round him unabashed ; then, as the water
deepened, he struck out to sea.
The world was bright again ; but a new change
had come upon his spirit. His love and longing
had been too boisterous, his joy had hovered upon
the brink of sudden death. As he rested on the
cool blue water, and rose and fell with the soothing
motion of the gentle swell, he felt at one with the
world which ^vas all one path towards her. What
were time and distance to make his love grow faint,
though she was far off', beyond the end of the infi-
nite ladder of light that glittered dazzlingly between
him and the horizon — were not his arms and his
courage strong? and with a slow, steady, effortless
stroke, he felt himself borne along towards the goal.
He was swimming southward, sunward. On either
hand, if he could have seen it, the sea was of the
deepest blue ; but his path lay along the broad,
MIDSUMMER NOON. 127
bright stream, like a transparent silver sunbeam,
which reached on to behind the sun in heaven.
The sun's rays w^ere strong upon his head ; as he
rose over the crest of a little w^ave, its foam splashed
refreshingly in his face ; the rippling of the w^ater,
the warmth overhead, and the still, even motion of
his limbs brought a kind of drowsiness with it.
The journey seemed long though the way was
pleasant, and Ariadne herself would meet him at
the end ; it was with a sobered joy that he thought
of what seemed the far-oft' meeting. But with the
drowsiness his strokes were slackening, and he
woke again to more strenuous pursuit. He thought,
" My best goodwill take a life's pursuit; Ariadne
will scorn an idle lover ; " and he swam faster ; he
knew he was swimming fast and well, and he
thought joyously of the nearing boat.
He heard the splash of the oars, and the sailors
humming in chorus " Lou Rossignou che vola."
He listened in vain for Ariadne's voice ; he saw
the boat fast drawing nearer, and she was leaning
forward in the bow. He smiled and did not speak ;
but as they drew quite near, he paused in his stroke,
and leaning, as it were, with his elbows on the
buoyant water, he took the ring and the sprig of
myrtle in his hand, and, as the boat came close,
he touched the prow and Ariadne's hand ; the ring
was on her finger and the sprig of myrtle in her
hand before any one else quite saw what passed.
138 MIDSUMMElt NOON,
Then, laughing, he cHmbed into the boat ; he said
it was glorious weather for a swim ; he talked fast
and to every one but her.
Just before they reached the yacht. Lord Moidart
patted him on the back with a good-humored laugh,
the like of which he has often had to encounter
since, and pointed out that if he had stayed on shore
in his clothes, the boat would have picked him up
in little more than another ten or fifteen minutes.
" But I could not wait," said he.
Ariadne vv^as close by, and they looked away from
each other, lest any one else should overhear the
answer of her eyes.
jll jlnt|ijr.
As in the rainbow's many-coloured hue,
Here see we watchet deeoened with a blue,
There a dark tawny witu ,. jjurple mixt,
Yellow and flame, with streaks of green betwixt,
A bloody stream into a blushing- run,
And ends still with the colour which begun;
Drawing- the deeper to a lighter stain,
Bringing the lightest to the deep'st again,
With such rare art each mingleth with his fellow.
The blue with watchet, green and red with yellow.
— William Browne.
REUBEN was not ill in body, and no visible
calamity had befallen him. He was an
artist of some promise, and had a picture at the
Academy. He was in love with a pretty rich young
woman of the gay world, with a heart to spare for
the first who could teach it. His dream had been
at one stroke to w4n such fame as should warrant
him in whispering, " My fame is yours and you my
love." But he had loved too little or too much to
betray his secret yet, and he had put a meaning in
his painting which she had not read. She had con-
gratulated him on its being well hung. Hiitc tllce
lachry77tce ! He left London that night. It was a
minor matter that his picture was not sold, and that
he had reasons for preferring the cheapest third-
class ticket that would bring him to the Channel's
shores. The next morning an even, gray, fine mist
fell, or rather hung, in silent, moveless gloom over
earth, and sea, and sky. The cliffs were low and
sandy, but patches of heather spoke of days when
all color was not blotted out of view. Reuben
turned mechanically away from the straggling water-
131
132 AT ANCHOR.
ing-place towards the open coast, and when he had
reached the point where the down was highest,
above the sandy ruts of the cHff road, he threw
himself on the elastic heath-tufts and set himself to
meditate on the universal grayness.
The unfortunate never know how fiercely they
have clung to their one last hope till the moment
when that too has failed. One by one lesser objects
of desire elude the grasp, and each disappointment
is borne, to the victim's own amaze, with hardly
weakened courage ; for, without knowing it, each
succeeding disappointment only serves to nourish
the strong surviving hope for the one bliss that shall
make amends for all the rest. And then at last —
some put off the day of waking so long that their
own last sleep comes before it — but to some at last
comes the moment of bewilderment when the life-
long desire is frozen by the blast of final depriva-
tion ; the last doom of denial is uttered from without,
and despair sweeps like a hurricane over every sense ;
and then, amidst the very bitterness of blank despair,
comes a vision of the double death. Even this
might have been borne like the rest, if only hope
'were left — of something, ever so little, anything —
but a shadow of the slightest thing, still in front to
hope for.
It was so with Reuben now. He had lived the
double life of man and artist, and again and again
he had failed in both. It is needless to rehearse the
A T ANCHOR. 133
trivial details, the recuiTing discouragements, which
he had defied, thinking, " Yet a few more months,
then wxeks, then interminable days — and then, and
then — she will see, and surely she will understand.
I will not tell her that my fate hangs upon her
seeing. If my spirit speaks to hers from the canvas,
there is no need ; and if it does not speak, if she
cannot or does not choose to hear, it is not for me to
beg for mercy, to force from her kindness words that
do not spring from her own desire to speak — to me
alone of all men. It may be she will not speak.
If so, that will be over, and one may live thereafter
as one can. But perhaps, perhaps, perhaps — oh !
if she should have that to say^ to say to me, which
my soul would give life, death and eternity to
hear ! "
This had been the burden oF his dreams, and she
had not spoken. He had prayed before, like the
great poet in his immortal agony — " And if you
leave me, do not leave me last! " " How can she
leave me," he muttered, " when she never came.'*"
She had not crossed the threshold of his studio ; if
she had, alone there, would she have understood.^
She never understood the passion of longing which
prompted his timid suggestion, would she not like
to come ? She had smiled with uncomprehending
courtesy, and he was just in his misery. How
could she have known what he never dared to say .''
He had spent his strength in silencing the jealous
134 AT ANCHOR.
rage which filled him when a happy, thoughtless
youth won easily the promise of her presence —
was it at a cricket-match, or where ? Nay, but he
wanted too much himself to be jealous of those
who won lesser boons ; his wishes had dared to
wander boundlessly, and this was the end of his
infinite longings. He questioned himself incredu-
ously, was this less than nothingness the end?
He lay upon the heather in the falling mist,
stunned, bewildered, understanding at last that he
had staked his life upon a single throw, and he had
lost. It was like the end of one of those year-long
games of chance played by barbarians. East and
West, in the far-ofi' past, and like the hero of such
tales, he had lost himself and all he had, and the
game must go on without him, for he had nothing
left to stake. His chance was over, once and for
ever. He could not look to win by the help of
Time's revenges, for he was no longer able even to
play, though the maddest run of luck should lure
him. It felt strange to be alive when every hope
was dead and eveiy purpose starved and atrophied.
" But," he thought, " it is no concern of mine now.
Since my soul passed out of my own keeping into
hers, it was she, not I, who had the power to dis-
pose of all its future."
The mist was growing lighter over the sea ; cloud
and horizon began to be distinguishable, and streaks
of gray above and below grew transparent, as if
AT ANCHOR. 1 35
colored lights of red and yellow were shining far
away behind them. Level gray moisture still hung
upon the land, and all round there was a silence
that might be felt. Reuben closed his eyes w^earily ;
he had not slept for several nights. His eyes were
hot, and there was a dull throbbing above the
brows. His limbs ached ; long-continued fatigue
and the forcibly postponed consciousness of bodily
discomfort were taking their revenge, and for a
moment his mental M^retchedness seemed forgotten
in - the sense of utter physical exhaustion and dis-
tress. The momentary oblivion was like a breath
of chloroform in the midst of pain. The feeling of
bodily discomfort was faintly but distinctly pleas-
urable, and as Reuben gave himself up to it he
thought dreamily that this explained the self-tor-
turing passions of asceticism. When the soul is
sick to death, bodily pain is the only possible source
of relief, the relief that comes from a change of
suffering. For a few moments mind and body were
almost unconscious together ; the pause was more
like faintness than sleep ; but before his eyes opened
again to confront the full visage of his grief, he felt
with dim astonishment, and something almost akin
to self-reproach, tliat his overmastering misery did
not even now wholly exclude every other mode of
consciousness. He felt the shallowness of his mis-
ery as an aggravation of its unsounded depths of
bitterness.
136 AT ANCHOR,
With the instinct that makes us say " Look ! ^
when we wish for the mind's attention, Reuben
opened his eyes to see if there was any escape from
the encompassing grayness, any change in the sur-
rounding gloom to wan-ant this strange feeble im-
pulse towards embracing a lesser pain. The sun
was hidden, but its light was struggling intermit-
tently through the clouds. The heavy gi*ay curtain
of opaque mist which had seemed to hang between
his eyes and the familiar world was not lifted ; it only
seemed to dissolve into shadowy colors, meaning-
less and manifold, like those which herald the trans-
formation scene in a Christmas pantomime. Sea
and sky had melted again into one ; but varied
shades of color, in pale mimicry of the rainbow's
bands, seemed to divide the continuous upright
bank of vapor that veiled or shadowed forth the
actual scene. It was too fantastic to be beautiful,
and the artist was too sad to take any interest in the
vagaries of nature ; but the returning memory of
despair kept his consciousness awake, and he felt
rather than saw opened out before him such a rain-
bow as might span Styx and Phlegethon when
infernal lightnings play upon slow showers of
poisoned mud. The indigo band of the horizontal
rainbow lay where a belt of weedy sea was over-
shadowed by the darkest cloud. The shallow
waters were turbid from the last night's swell, and
there may have been a sandbank behind the reef,
AT ANCHOR. 1^7
helpirtg to color the dull waves red. The half-
lurid light from above lit up the reddish strip of sea,
that melted then into pale metallic yellow where a
break in the clouds was reflected on the sullen
surface ; and then the same shaded streaks of gray,
blue and red, with green and yellow lights,
repeated themselves in the sky above, as in the
mirage the scene reflects itself upon the sky, instead
of earth and sea being mirrored in smooth waters
underneath. The unearthly hues were not without
a mysterious grace, but they had no charm for
Reuben : he had done with the world of m.en, and
it was an added mockery that nature should have
new tricks to play oft' before his careless and reluc-
tant eyes.
For this was the burden of his wonder now. All
was over, and the strange thing is, how little differ-
ence it seemed to make. Her life, sunrise and
sunset, the work and pleasure of indifferent friends,
all this would go on just as before ; every material
care and difficulty, and the one duXy Reuben never
thought to question, remained unchanged in pros-
pect. He wished never to touch a brush again ;
but it was not painting to color canvases for hire,
and how else could he earn the money he must have
to keep his lame young brother in the country home,
whence he wrote, only yesterday, of his happiness
and mending health } And if Reuben painted for
pay, how could he do less than his best work, and
138 AT ANCHOR.
who would know the difference when none of the
accustomed skill had left his fingers, only the light
of hope his heart ? And he had been wont to call
it simony if men sold work done by skilled hands
while the heart and thoughts were far away !
A light brown rain-cloud drifted like a waterspout
athwart the motionless gray background. Was he
to live and walk a soulless ghost among the living,
a moving shadow of unknown pain ? Nothing had
been real in his life but the loss of it ; all the rest
was vain imagination, that had passed current with
his fellows for reality, while he himself could make-
believe its truth ; and now he must still walk among
the living, veiling the grim forms of death and pain,
who lodged devouringly in the broad palaces his
imagination had reared for hope and love. Nothing
was changed outside. The moments were long, and
again and again he looked upon the gray mist ; he
felt its clammy touch as he watched the pale colors
in their shadowy dance, varying yet the same, ever
pale and shadowy and weird. So it was, and so it
would be through such years as the prisoner for life
only dares to think of when they end. The life-
sentenced convict may hope for death, or escape, or
a ticket of leave ; but Reuben could not even hope
for death, which would leave his little brother to
the cold charity of the busy world.
There was a buoy some way out in the Channel,
the only token of a sharp sunken rock. As it rose
AT ANCHOR. 139
and sank with the ground swell, Reuben's sympa-
thies went out towards it as a living thing. It clings
to its anchorage with that tenacity that made men
choose the anchor for the sign of hope ; it clings
blindly with brute fidelity to its forced anchorage,
but it has nothing to fear or hope from storm or
sunshine : life and death are for the craft that thread
the Channel beyond. And then his mind wandered
back to the despised canvas. Did she know that
every line and every tint was born directly of her
influence, was inspired by her gracious smile, or
prompted by her grave opinion .'' It was her work,
and she did not own it ; it was the monument of
his love, the only relic left him of his hopeful life in
sight of her ; and the only relic of her left to him
was a relic, not of her, only of what she had declined
to receive at his hands. The intensest conscious-
ness does not soliloquize in words ; if he had been
forced to seek them, they would have seemed few
and empty. It is hard, ineffably hard ! It seems to
be true. What then? It cannot be true. It is
true. Oh me ! and it is hard !
And then the sense of dreary anchorage upon a
hidden duty faded, and he felt like a drowning
man, clutching at he knew not what as strong
waves sucked him back, bruised and battered, to
foreseen destruction ; and then it was not the boat's
gunwale, nor the slippery rock, or yielding herbage
that he was grasping in the hard death struggle^
HO AT ANCHOR.
but a soft, firm hand, warm and gentle to the touch,
and to be saved by that was a pleasure, even if the
salvation had been death. But then — it was hardly
a dream, though the hand felt very like hers as he
had said " Good-by " only the afternoon before, —
then he seemed to feel those soft sweet fingers
firmly and gently unloosening the clutch by which
he clung to them and life. What right had he to
cling to her ? Yet he clung, and with gentle irre-
sistible touch she unclasped his clinging fingers ;
and as in a dream one falls through space, waking
prostrate with a palpitating heart, so Reuben won-
dered, was it all a dream, as his eyes opened again
upon the mist, and he loosed the convulsive grasp
which crushed and half uprooted the wiry heather
shoots.
There is a strange incredulity in some sick men
when at last the skilled judgment pronounces that
their days are numbered. Very few can grasp,
while they still live, and suffer no more — it may be
less — than yesterday, that a day is coming, is near,
when they, their living selves, will be numbered
with the painless dead. They come back again and
again to the thought with a sacred surprise, how
should so strange a tale be true ? So Reuben again
and again faced his blank surprise ; his world had
turned to a shadow of dark, cold emptiness. How
could he live } And yet not a visible reason for his
life and effort had been withdrawn from the world
AT ANCHOR. 141
of his fellows' sight and feeling. His mind was
dazed, his limbs paralyzed ; every sense but that of
sight seemed closed, and what he saw was only like
a shadow of w^hat he felt. It crossed his mind like
a recollection from some former state of existence,
that a clear horizon lay behind the mist, that some-
times the sun shone upon clear outlines of the rock
where rolling waves might break in spray ; and so
he knew — by an effort he recalled to memory the
knowledge — that the world had not ceased to live
and love, to labor, suffer and aspire, because he
was cut off from living partnership in its cares and
hopes.
Hours had passed, and the mist was falling still.
The spirit of his waking dreams had changed. The
many-colored world, looming dimly through the
veil of universal grayness, seemed to float in space,
like a child's toy balloon, but he and it were held
together -as if the visionary earth and sea were
anchored on his aching heart, as if the iron that
entered into his soul was the solid, crushing im-
movable shadow of the hope that was gone from
him.
He had no thought of moving; distant sounds
fell without meaning on his ears, till all at once
he was startled by the shriek of a railway whistle,
that began strangely so as to accompany and pro-
long a sea-gull's cry. The sound jarred upon his
quivering frame, and w^ith an ostrich-like instinct
142 AT ANCHOR.
he hid his face, lying with upstretched arms upon
the sandy slope. He sought to be alone with his
grief, to gather all his strength together, if so be that
he might bear its weight. And as if in answer
to his desire, a space of silence was granted him, a
respite from the sights and sounds of the outer
world. He was alone with his grief; he seemed to
be lying in a world apart, like one in bodily pain,
whose only striving is to endure ; and then all at
once a rush of feeling, too massive to waste itself
in the unspoken words of conscious thought, swept
over his struggling will. Endurance was swallowed
up in pain ; he moaned aloud. He had tasted the
bitterness of death ; a death-like stillness fell upon
soul and body. A low moan coming from far off
seemed like the echo of his own lost utterance. But
his sorrow would henceforth keep silence, and the
melancholy wailing of the wind upon the telegraph
wires grew louder and more frequent as eold gusts
began to gather the mist into watery clouds.
Reuben was wet through, stiff, and weary to the
point which makes change of place a luxurious
change of uneasiness. He rose to his feet and
stretched the cramped, chill limbs, and ran cold
fingers through his salt wet hair. He made an
effort to awake. It could not all be a bad dream,
but a man should rouse himself to know the worst.
What was the worst? His thought was, " I would
sell my soul to be free to cut my throat to-night I
AT ANCHOR. 143
The devil take it ! Why isn't there even a devil to
take body and soul at a gift, w^hen one asks nothing
better than to be lid of both, to escape the curse of
life's long emptiness ? " He was not an irreverent
youth, nor much given to sw^earing as a rule, and
the unwonted invocation helped to rouse him. He
smiled rather grimly and said to himself, " Even if
there were a devil to go to, it wouldn't be much
use now." And then, standing upright in the mist,
he looked at the mock rainbow over the sandbanks,
and a vague temptation possessed him. There was
no hope, no outlook, no heaven of hope in front, no
way of salvation for soul or body. Was it possible
that there might be a pleasant way of sinning.^ " I
wish " he began, and then he laughed aloud
and pulled himself together more wakefully, and
tried to put some sane merriment in his laugh. " I
am glad I don't wish for anything, if I can wish for
nothing better than that there was a devil for me to
go to ! "
And so he v/ent back to the station and caught
the Parliamentary train to town ; and his landlady
hoped he had had a pleasant journey and would not
fail to change his socks.
m ®nr Jrall^rs.
And here, as lamps across the bridge turn pale
In London's smokeless resurrection light,
Dark breaks to dawn. — D. G. Rosetti.
VI.
I NOTICE that nothing tells a truer tale about
the set of a person's prejudices or preferences
than the thing which they jDut first in a comparison.
If a man says his lady love is like the moon, if I
were she I shouldn't be best pleased, for it means
he cares more about star-gazing than love. If a
man says the murmur of an excited crowd is like the
roaring of the sea, he may be able to i:ell you what
the wild waves say, but he neither knows nor cares
much about the feeling of a mass of men stirred by
one voice and passion. And so it is proved that I
don't stand in the first rank among the votaries of
nature when I confess that the sort of association
that gives a pleasant feeling to a walk along the cliff
in the October gales is that with the stream of trafiic
along the narrow pavement of a city street at noon,
with the tide of brown or blackish human specks
that pour over Blackfriars Bridge at nine in the
morning, or the jostling torrent streaming through
the doors when Exeter Hall is going to be packed
from roof to ceiling with eager half-taught men in
"demonstration" of some half-learnt lesson of po-
147
148 MEN OUR BROTHERS*
litical wisdom or justice. If I dash into the war of
words myself, and turn for a moment the argument
the way I wish, I do not say to myself, " Such as
this was the pleasure I felt when, bathing with our
host, I learnt to dive through the breakers, drift with
the back-draught to the right moment, and then
dive again and swim with the current towards the
chosen landing." But I have felt instead among
the London crowd, when the excitement of the
passing contest was over, as if the charm of this
face-to-face wrestling with the stream of kindred in-
dependent passions was to me something like that
other pleasure felt by the skilled swimmer in the
dangerous element he had learned to master.
But in general I think the things that interest me
are interesting in themselves without the help of
metaphor. I do not care so much about the varia-
tions in an individual lot as for the ever-growing
intricacy of the relations between each set of lives
and a thousand other sets. I would rather be dead,
buried and forgotten than have to live in sight of
collisions and confusions one could do nothing to
reconcile or harmonize. I can conceive no more
fascinating ambition, no more entrancing aim, than
that of unravelling the tangled threads of popular
desire, and choosing for the unconscious many the
one path along which all may move straight towards
the sought content.
You say it isn't easy.^ If it were easy, where
MEN OUR BROTHERS. 149
would the amusement be ? If it were impossible, I
for one should despair of finding an interest in life.
If you go in for practical politics, you deliberately
make it your business to discover and divine, in
order to defeat, the involuntary opposition offered
by short-sighted interests to a systematic advocacy
of the universal best. Whether one succeeds or
fails, the contest is worth trying, and at least ennui
is impossible while it lasts.
Of course my political friends call me a doctri-
naire prig Avhen I want to stick inconveniently close
to general principles, or they are getting indefensi-
bly warm about a temporary expedient ; and a repu-
tation for priggishness is rather fatal to one's chance
of becoming an accepted leader. But I would rather
be free to want things done my own way than get
more done by less logical demands. Hardly any of
the men who have ruled their fellows have the
supreme qualification of seeing their way straight
to an absolutely ideal end. They grow impassioned
and contend successfully over the establishment of
a few axiomata media^ which, to my mind,, have
neither the dignity of a first principle nor the ur-
gency of a concrete fact. The "practical" politi-
cian struggles towards a favorite partial reform as I
would have men strive for the very millennium ; the
sentimentalist cares for the wrongs and sufferings of
an injured few as I would have men care about the
mere possibility of iniquitous pain ; professional re-
150 MEN OUR BROTHERS,
formers, demagogues and agitators lose themselves,
and are content to lose themselves, in w^orking the
machinery towards a near result, which is only of
value to me as a means or a symbol of approach to
some change of universal scope. The means are
good and welcome, but they are all alike mere means,
and I care no more for the means I have to use
myself than for those which prove effective in an-
other hand. In fact, I think I care less : one's own
range of action is so narrow, and one sees all round
one's own blunders ; but if somebody else, from
whom one does not expect infallibility at starting,
does of his own accord, even in part, what we could
only earn our own self-respect by doing completely
and triumphantly, it seems so much clear, unex-
pected gain.
And then if, instead of being unforeseen, the pleas-
ure has been carefully prepared by our own hands,
if we have knowingly helped our neighbor towards
the wisdom with which he delights us now, there is
a double or triple satisfaction left for the mind to
ruminate upon. We have planted a tree which will
bear fruit, though our own efforts were barren al-
ways ; and besides the fruit for this generation,
seedlings and suckers will increase and multiply, so
that in them the parent stock may remain green for-
ever. I have the keenest sense of the usefulness of
men who are not much missed when they die, be-
cause their power has been spent in rearing inher-
MEN OUR BROTHERS, 151
itors of their own work and purpose. I think the
Buddhists say, " Blessed is he who has shown the
way," i.e.^ who has shown it to others, whether he
travelled far along it himself or no.
Entanglement in exacting practical affairs is not
conducive to poetical meditation, even at the most
witching hour of night. But on one particular
occasion I had a companion, an intelligent fellow,
but with something of the poetic temperament, and
a melancholy twnst, that, if he had been an artist
instead of a plasterer, w^ould have inspired medita-
tions to the full as dismal as those of our friend
" Reuben." We had our way to make through
London pretty nearly from north-east to south-west,
and his running comments upon all v\^e saw^ helped
to fix the common sights in my memory. We had
been at a local Trade Union meeting somewhere
between Whitechapel and Stepney, and when we
left, nearer one than twelve, it appeared that my
friend had told his wife not to expect him home
that night, as he would be kept late and could stop
with a chum in the neighborhood of the meeting.
This friend's wife turned out to be ill, and as Waters
had to be at work in Lambeth by six, he agreed to
halt in my chambers for the two or three hours'
interval.
I was in good spirits after an Interesting discus-
sion of what seemed to me an important and pro-
mising idea. Waters was indignant and depressed
t52 MEN OUR BROTHERS.
because the idea was met by opposition of a narrow
and apparently selfish kind. The scheme was for
a so-called "Federalization" of the various trade
societies throughout the country, a fusion of inte-
rests between the men of different trades, like the
amalgamation already carried out in many impor-
tant trades of independent local unions. Theoret-
ically it seemed a logical, and indeed inevitable,
development of the fundamental principles of trade
unionism ; it seemed as if the laborer could only be
really strong through association when all the differ-
ent industries were pledged to support and reinforce
each other in all reasonable demands, and to restrain
unreasonable demands by the check of a responsible
public opinion.
Just as it has been found that the men in one
town or one workshop will threaten a strike upon
trivial personal grounds which the trade society as
a body disallows, so it is to be expected that the
excited passions of a large and united body of men
may sometimes need to be overruled by the sober
counsels of disinterested persons of their own class ;
that sailors might preach forbearance to weavers,
and -weavers patience and moderation to masons.
In large towns the " Trade Council " aims at doing
locally what a federal union of the trades would do
for all England, and in my ignorance I thought the
scheme had only to be proposed to meet with a
hearty welcome, notably from the existing trade
MEN OUR BROTHERS. t$^
Councils, whose dignity, 1 argued, must be increased
by their acting as intermediaries between the small
and large assemblies representing all the trades.
But there are ambitions of all degrees of narrow--
ness, ii,nd the men who are accustomed to be of
chief consequence on the trade council of a large
town do not care to sink their importance by taking
a subordinate part in a really national scheme ; and
there was some justification even for the doubts of
honest and unselfish practical men, who saw that
some of the most talkative promoters of the new
scheme were men who had not a solid reputation
for industry and good faith in their own trade or
neighborhood. It was a repetition in small of the
old experience that visionaries and charlatans are
more ready to take up with even true new lights
than the sober mass of practical men.
Waters was one of the exceptional men who see
the broadest questions in a fair light without losing
their grasp of the material details ; and just because
he knew the scheme to be practical and possible, he
was the more discouraged by finding it meet with
but flimsy support and substantial opposition. I
said, by way of encouragement, it was not so far
from the present standpoint to the realization of
our wishes here, as it was from the old conspiracy
laws to the present state of things : with time and
patience we should arrive, as our predecessors had
done.
1 54 ME;N OUR BR O THERS,
He said, "Ay; and at the same cost. Did you
ever think how many of the best men of two or
three generations felt their hearts breaking, day by
day, because of just such slowness in the progress
towards right ? "
I tried again, with my ow^n favorite topic of con-
solation : "It is pleasant anyway to see that there
is a possible solution of our difficulties ; that the
only thing needed is to bring the practical leaders
over to see the solution as their own, — there are no
insuperable obstacles."
He said, stopping as he spoke, and taking hold
of the lamp-post by w^ay of a nov gtoj for his elo-
quence, "I beg your pardon, Mr. James; but if
you will allow me to say so, you, and gentlemen
like you, remind me ver^- much of the poet Words-
worth."
I tried to intimate that this was an undeserv^ed
compliment, but he proceeded to explain that it was
intended otherwise.
"I had never read much of Wordsworth," he
continued, " till after something John Mill said to
me once, much the same as what I read afterwards
in his autobiography. I believed in Mill in a way
one seldom believes in any one, least of all in gen-
tlemen and philosophers ; and I bought a complete
edition of Wordsworth, and spent one winter's
evenings in reading his poems well through. And
the conclusion I came to was, that he might be
MEN OUR BROTHERS. 155
very good reading for ladies and gentlemen who
had never felt anything like the French Revolution
themselves. Much of it was fine poetry for every-
body ; but what Mill praised in it was only good
morality for born aristocrats, who wanted to learn
a little humanity, but were never likely to carry
their learning too far. I never liked Shelley so
well as when he saw through Peter Bell the Second
and his
Dim recollections
Of pedlars tramping on their rounds ;
Milk pans and pails, and odd collections
Of saws and proverbs, and reflections
Old parsons make in burying-grounds.
' Burns, Shelley, were with us,' as Browning says,
but Wordsworth — I should have liked to tell him
to his solemn face that shepherds, pedlars, mad
women, and all, were good for something more
than figures in a landscape for him to feel wise and
good in looking at.
" The landscape /see is the other way. I was at
Manchester for a Trades Congress once, and went
up to the Cumberland lakes for the Saturday to
Monday after. All Sunday I roamed upon the bare
hills without meeting a living soul, and I grew
savage to think of this glorious nature being enjoyed
alone by a poet who cared no more for his fellowmen
than for the picturesque stones and daffodils ; while
T -, the engineer, and P , the brassfounder,
15^ MEN OUR BROTHERS,
and V , whom you knew in Westminster, and I
and thousands more, who could love the stones and
flowers as well as Wordsworth, and our brethren
as our very selves, we by a fluke see these hills once
in. a lifetime, if then, and then perhaps not without
grudging the few shillings that we think should
have gone elsewhere than on two or three days'
pleasuring. Well, if you'll forgive me for saying
so, when swells like you come among us and try to
understand what we want, and do your best to help
us, we can't help feeling now and then that what is
life and death to us is after all only a moral kind
of play to you. Like Wordsworth and his peasants,
you make a kind of picture to yourselves of the life
of the people, only you do it in scientific prose,
instead of in poetry, that I can enjoy well enough
when I forget the moral. Your pictures and his
may be true enough — that isn't my quarrel ; but we
want to live our own lives, not to sit for our pictures
to be hung up in statesmen's libraries. You say,
' Let's have a correct likeness first, and then we shall
know where we are and be able to help.' But we
feel all that you want to draw and more than 3''ou
can see towards it, and the people won't stand still
when they are hungry or in hot anger to let you find
out things about them that they know by heart them-
selves already, and they aren't grateful to those who
ask them. And then I begin to think no one from
outside can help us — no one who doesn't feel heart
MEN OUR BROTHERS. 157
and soul with us, as no one can feel who has never
had the chance of doing more than sympathize ;
and that we must wait for one of ourselves with
brains to understand and power to act even while
he feels. — But this is uncivil, ungrateful* talk, for
which I ask your pardon, sir. I daresay you'll
understand enough of how we feel to excuse my
saying what comes uppermost."
I frankly owned that Waters' instinct was just
enough. As to Wordsworth, it may be part of my
Philistinism, but I don't above half like him, and
wasn't sorry to be furnished with a reason why.
But as I understood something of my friend's grounds
for irritation, I trusted that he might see enough of
the other side to excuse my reluctance to surrender
the intellectual freedom with which one starts, by
abandoning one's self altogether to the current of
sympathetic anger. When one has the good luck
not to be the victim of a bad custom in the boot
trade, does it make one a more useful citizen to feel
as if the abolition of that custom was the most
urgent duty laid on men? For a shoemaker the
evil has its natural place and proportion in life, but
if we — I said to him — " If we are to succeed in
helping you at all, I think it must be chiefly at first
by clearing away the mechanical difficulties in the
way of your helping yourselves. The social ma-
chinery hinders you now, we ought to tinker at it
till we make it help instead ; and that is in itself
158 MEN OUR BROTHERS.
such a troublesome job that I am not sure whether
you need grudge us the unsubstantial pay of a little
harmless self-satisfaction when for a moment we
think we see the track clear for a few yards in the
jungle ahead, though we have still to get the troops
and baggage wagons over the ground."
We had been standing still during this discussion,
and a policeman had stopped a few yards off to look
at us. Waters jerked his shoulder towards the
representative of the law, and said, " No. 91 thinks
we are a suspicious-looking pair, and I suppose you
would like me to be thankful that nevertheless we
two meet as friends, with no worse aim than that of
setting the world to rights." I assented, and felt
mightily inclined to pass my arm through his as
we walked on and dropped into broken chat on
less exciting themes, but I did not dare. The mo-
tion was natural, for we had reached the point of
friendly freedom at which home truths can be ex-
changed ; and it is possible he would have felt this
as I did, and not have resented the familiarity at
the moment. But then we should meet again, he
in the company of his daily associates, and I among
mine ; and I dreaded the involuntary, almost inevi-
table, jar to so susceptible a nature when he imag-
ined that such or such a stately swell, who might
take my arm condescendingly in St. James' Street,
would stare at the notion of my taking his in Cur-
MEN OUR BROTHERS. 159
tain Road. So we walked on side by side, merely
keeping step together.
Presently, to prevent the silence lasting so long
as to make it awkward to speak again, I said the
interminableness of London streets was a thing I
never quite got used to. He agreed, and linked his
assent on to our former subject by the remark that
it was easier to interest one's self in statistics about
so many thousand persons, than in their actual
bodily presence as symbolized by so many miles of
dwelling and sleeping rooms. " Cities," he went
on, " have a solitude of their own, and I shouldn't
quarrel with a poet who dwelt upon the crowded
life as a sort of background, an inanimate scenery
in front of which the little group of actors we see
and know play out their part. When men are
crowded together in great numbers, we cannot see
them all at once as men ; at least, the only human
element that can be brought before us vividly is the
common beginning, end and middle of their lives
as shown in the figures, that always seem so inhu-
manly dry, about births, deaths and marriages.
And yet it is just as real and moving a fate that you
and I or any other mother's son should spend our
days among this forest of hearths and dooi*ways, as
that another branch of our same race should spend
the years in company with dumb beasts, rarely or
never seeing an unknown human face. In a single
stroll we pass a thousand living men ; we don't so
l6o MEN OUR BROTHERS.
much as note their features ; and yet each one has a
life of his own in which the rest have no place save
as an unnoticed background. Imagine the still
mountains compact of a million heaped-up, eager,
conscious lives, and yet as still as the waste lying
before us now."
He stopped and pointed. We had reached a
kind of carrefour ; a wide road with a tramway
ended where it was crossed at an oblique angle by
another narrower but still busy thoroughfare ; oppo-
site the tramway two converging squalid streets met
at this centre, and at right angles to it a dark,
straight street, once of solemn, middle-class respec-
tability, opened with a protest against the lurid
glare of the gas-lamps and gin-palaces which stood
sentinel at every other corner. I looked all around ;
it was not the first time by many I had passed
through such scenes, but then I had not been forced
to halt and note their features by a comrade to
w^hom no scene could be expressionless. I am no
hand at descriptions, and when I compare my recol-
lections of that night with the other street scenes I
have tried to notice since, I know that I only saw
by the light of his stronger feeling.
The air of London streets by night is almost
always brown, the color that is fog by daylight ;
this darkness fills the vistas down opening streets,
it hangs between the houses, and stretches like a
level sea between the roofs and lowest clouds ; but
MEN OUR BROTHERS, l6l
in this region it is seldom one so mucii as sees the
clouds that hide the starlight ; one sees so little
through the thick brown air that it serves itself for
a cloud — veiling no gods, however. Now and
then a red window opens through the darkness,
like the flash in mid-air from a lighthouse when
storms hide the solid building. One must know
beforehand what is there to guess that the light
pours from the unveiled window of some seventh
story in a warehouse, where night is be-ing turned
into day over an urgent job ; or it may be merely
the illuminated face of a church clock, with the
tower, and the hands and figures blotted out alike,
or the shell of an advertising magic lantern, with
black letters in praise of somebody's boots or hats,
ready to break out in relief against the light.
But everywhere upon the dull brown pervading
mist there rests the reflection of a lurid glare from
the dim gas-lamps, and the light that leaks thi'ough
shop-fronts and the closed shutters or ragged blinds,
behind which women sew, and some — thank
God I — sojne households gather in homely happi-
ness for the evening's rest. And as the streets
darken, w^hen the last shops are closed, and the
ragged children have almost disappeared up myste-
rious courts and archways, when the wheel traffic
is ending, and only a few rapid, silent passengers
^re scattered on the footway, it seems as If the dim
light by which all the children of misery grope
1 62 MEN OUR BROTHERS.
their way to an early death was turned inwards ;
the streets are darker, but the glow upon the murk
air only seems the deeper red, as if, like glow-worms
in the dark, each smoking lamp or flaring farthing
candle flickered with a living light, casting upon
the sombre streets the sad shadow of the slow
agony and dumb strivings of stupid, drunken, caged
humanity.
As darkness that may be felt, the silence falls like
lead, more heart-breaking than the rarer shouts
from a brawling party still unwilling to seek its
comfortless lair within. The strange half light
seemed to mask the sordid familiarity of the street
prospect, the subdued passion in my companion's
voice added to the sense of awe ; it was like a
dream, in which some new poet, wise and merciful
and stern, led the way through a real Inferno,
where sins and judgments walked hand in hand,
and the children shared their fathers' load. The
air seemed to grow hotter and heavier ; the red
darkness reminded me of the glare round the
horizon from the furnaces at night in the mid-
land Black Country, but the sultriness, I thought,
could come from no honest fire of coals. I heard
the tramp of heavy measured steps upon the pave-
ment, and something like a fear startled me for a
moment. If this was hell, who but I could be the
criminal, Ihe stranger keeping the laws of another
land?
MEN OUR BROTHERS. 1 63
Waters too seemed oppressed. He had been
standing bareheaded, and now turned his face up-
wards, and as he said " Thunder," I felt large drops
of rain fall one by one. We started on our way
again, walking briskly, but we had still far to go,
and as we reached London Wall, the slowly gath-
ering storm broke over us. As if at the signal of
a clap of thunder, the clouds came down in torrents,
and my friend had a day's work to do without
changing his clothes. We turned for shelter into
the first wide dooi*way, where another pair of way-
farers had taken refuge before us. They did not
notice us, but I looked under cover of my umbrella,
and I cannot forget the two faces that I saw. A tall
young soldier, very young, with a small oval face,
brown hair, and just good, honest, boyish features,
but he was looking at the girl who held his arm
with an expression 1 had no words to represent. I
can only describe it now to those who have seen
Salvini in Othello. If you have seen his
Come, Desdemona, I have but an hour
Of love,
you have seen the look with which this transfigured
ploughboy looked at his sweetheart's face. And
she ? Some years ' his senior, and looking maybe
older than her age, the girl's thin, plain face had a
hard, eager look, her eyes moved restlessly, and
her laugh sounded strained. They had been at
164 MEN OUR BROTHERS,
some music-hall together, and were comparing the
amusement of this and other evenings. The faces
interested me, and I fancied I knew the boy's regi-
ment, but I did not care to hear the talk. Presently,
however, the girl's voice seemed to be raised ; she
was only asking, " Did you ever go to the Oxford.'' "
and then, in a hurried, uneasy tone, like the scared
restlessness of her eyes, she added, " I went once
with a cousin." It was still the first act, and
Othello only smiled beatifically. The rain still fell,
we affected to turn our backs upon the couple and
their voices sank ; presently Waters burst out, "I
can't stand this ! " and strode off furiously through
the rain. He had keen ears, and when I overtook
him he said he could not bear to hear the woman
lying ; she was asking the lad for money and then
pretending she did not like to take it ; he raged
inwardly ; the divine dreaming of the youth was
nothing to him, nothing to set against our instinct
that his bliss would be a shortlived dream ; but the
end of his indignation was charitable in a way.
He cursed the girl and her whole tribe, and yet he
turned angrily to me : " She may be doing no harm
beyond just cheating the boy out of his few spare
shillings ; she may work honestly for a starving
pittance, and take those few shillings home as duti-
fully as any other earnings ! "
We hurried on through the blinding storm ; the
rain came down like slanting sheets of water, and
MEN OUR BROTHERS. 165
then as it beat upon the pavement, the drops re-
bounded and rose like a low mist along the street
and the dark glittering pavement ; and then as the
drops grew smaller the patter sank into a hiss as if
the earth itself w^ere hot, and the fierce showers
were turned to steam as they touched the burning
crust. The air was heavy ; there was no coolness
in the wind that now and then swept along the
ground whirling together the low mist and steam-
ing spray, which by some trick of sense looked
white as it drifted through the lurid, Malebolgian
night.
We were near the Temple, and after the manner
of thunder-showers the rain was ceasing as ^ve
reached cover. It was three o'clock ; w^e were
both wet through, and I had no fire to dry Waters'
clothes ; but I offered him a bath, while I boiled
some water over the gas for coftee, and tossed him
a dry suit with the hope he wasn't too much of an
aristocrat to wear another man's clothes w^ien his
own were drenched. He laughed pleasantly and
submitted, and in a slightly worn shooting suit of
mine looked more of a gentleman than in his own •
Sunday clothes. He had taste enough to see, and
too little vanity to be vexed at this, and it was in a
pleasant tone of equality that he laughed at the im-
possibility of men being really equal, while they
couldn't all afford to employ the same tailors. This
launched us in fresh discussion as to whether there
1 66 MEN OUR BROTHERS.
was really anything in the finest fruits of social
civilization which might not, if we all pleased, be
made cheaply accessible to every one, and whether,
further, this same every one could and would be
found able to enjoy the accessible good. A couple
of hours passed wakefully over coffee, cigars, and
this inexhaustible theme.
Then it was time for him to start, and as I
couldn't, for very shame, go to sleep when my
friend's day's work began, I decided to walk with
him across the river to Waterloo, and run down
by the 5.40 train to breakfast with the secretary of
a new branch of the Agricultural Laborers' Union.
He had wanted me to come later in the day to a
projected meeting, but other engagements forbade,
and I was glad of the chance to see him all the
same, and get him to take up the tw^o or three sug-
gestions I should have liked to make to his members
myself. I should thus be back in town by twelve,
when a case I was engaged in threatened to come
on, and also — right or wrong, I must confess this
weighed with me a little — Waters w^ould not be
disturbed in his plastering by any scorn for gentle-
manly idleness. I ought not, however, to have
thought of such a chance, for the radical refinement
of his nature proved itself by the dropping of all
half-bred, jealous susceptibilities the moment he
became my guest.
We were good friends before, but the night's
MEN OUR BROTHERS. 167
intercourse left our friendshijD more confiding ; for
this reason I am' glad it should be remembered,
and remembered, if my friends will be so kind, in
association with the morning, not the midnight sky.
-^Vt five o'clock we sallied forth again, just as
the first cold glimmer of daylight began to put out
the street lamps. We walked by the riverside, but
the reflection of the cur^'ing• rows of lisrht in the
water had lost its brilliancy, and as yet the sky was
all dark, unbroken gray, the smooth dull gray which
is the surest herald of a hot sun at noon. It vv^as
too early for my train, so we walked together as far
as Westminster.
There had been a long sitting, and Pat O'Reilly,
Vvdio lives over the v/ater, hailed me hilariously from
a cab as he was rattling home across the bridge. I
said to Waters, " vSo we are not the only ones who
have been makinsr a niofht of it."
It is one of his eccentricities to despise parlia-
mentary government, and he scowled (I w^asn't in
the House then) , ' ' Perhaps we are the only ones
who haven't been doing mischief the while."
After all he is less accustomed to do ^vithout his
night's rest than I am, and he was sufiering from
the re-action after an unwonted strain. We stopped
in the middle of Westminster Bridge, and he gave a
troubled sigh.
" * Man goeth forth unto his work and to his
labor till the evening.' I've nothing to say against
1 68 MEN OUR BROTHERS.
that, and it is very difficult to know, when we are
grumbhng against our lot, whether we are \\^antmg
to shirk the common, wholesome discipline of labor,
or whether we merely want to divide the load more
fairly ; whether we are wanting others to work
with us of their own accord, or whether we want,
in malice or charity, to make them work by force,
since they won't choose for themselves what they
tell us is the noblest calling. And if I, who have
tried to see things fairly, and have nothing in par-
ticular to complain of myself — (we've got the nine
hours, and I take forty shillings a week pretty well
all the year round) — if I can't help feeling this sort
of angry doubt sometimes, can you wonder that
there is the anger always without the doubt among
the hundreds of thousands who sometimes work
long hours for low pay, and sometimes walk the
streets for no pay at all, who want more money
than they can earn for pleasures that are, after all,
no worse and far less costly than those rich scamps
enjoy without having to earn the chance, and who
would like best of all to be as idly extravagant as
their idlest ' betters ' ? It's a tangled job altogether,
and though I don't suppose we should mend it by
making a clean sweep, unless we all grew wiser
first, one feels sometimes as if it would be a relief
just to clear the ground of everything that is, so that
you and I at least might have no share of responsi-
bility in so much that's wrong."
MEN OUR BROTHERS, 169
The good fellow delivered himself of this charita-
bly subversi\'c sentence in a slow, meditative way,
that was not without its humorous aspect. We
leant against the parapet of the bridge and looked
up and down the full stream. Towards the east the
gray mist seemed to be sinking slowly downwards,
the clouds were vanishing into a light haze overhead
and thickening fog below^ The dome and cupola of
the cathedral just showed above the mist, and some-
thing like the ghost of a pale twilight illuminated
the shadowy apparition. And upon the river below,
where the brown fog ^vas thickest, suddenly there
shone out sparkles, red and bright like the rising
sun, which wx did not see.
Waters ^vas easily turned from the contemplation
of his wrongs. " I always wonder," he said, " why
the ripples see the sun before we do."
I am generally divided betv^^een contempt for the
narrowness of these men when they rail at the few
for grievances which they themselves could redress
with a strong hand if they pleased, and admiration
for the magnanimity Avith which they tolerate their
weak oppressors. The fortunes of the world turn
upon the magnanimity of its conquerors. I asked
Waters if he had read Machiavelli — he reads Italian,
and he is an admirer of Leopardi — and when he
said no, I quoted the lines —
Et e e sempre fii e sempre fia,
Che '1 bene succeda al male, il male al ben,
E r un sempre cagion dell' altro sia.
170 MEN OUR BROTHERS.
' ' They are the key to the stationary revolutions o^
tn& past ; if the selfish many merely divide the spoils
of the selfish few, it has all to begin over again, and
w^ill end no better than before. Say the victory is
in your hands now ; you are the strongest ; your
rightful dues have been denied; you have your
brother by the throat ; he is in your power. Sup-
pose he says, like an ancient debtor, ' Have patience
with me and I will pay thee all ' ? "
Waters gave a low whistle. " That's one way of
putting it. You aristocrats are too clever by half.
' Have patience with me and I will pay thee all ! '
So tve are the unmerciful creditors ! " And he
laughed again with frank amusement.
There was a coftee-stall at the corner of the Bridge,
where our ways parted. A crossing-sweeper, got
up a la Turque^ whom I had ahva}'s taken to be a
sham, was having his breakfast there. I answered,
" Nay, the world's future turns upon your showing
mercy. Have patience with us and, Inshallah ! we
w411 pay you all ! "
We shook hands and parted ; but I turned back
once more to say, " If you have patience, and we do
not pay, make a clean sweep then."
Jftujkinj In l|c ila$$.
Nondum amabam et amare amabam : quaerebam quod amarem, amans
amare, et oderam securitatem, et viam sine muscipulis.
— S, Augustine.
VII.
I AM not going to trace "the epitaph of glory
fled," but of a mistake that stopped so long to
look in the glass that it never got itself fairly made.
I always feel sorry for the noxious plants, fungi,
affections, reptiles, and am.bitions that humanity
sends half grown to Hades. Poor Hades, too, thus
populated like a new Van Diemen's Land 1 But to
the point.
It has done nothing but rain for the last week ;
yesterday twelvemonths was gloriously fine. I went,
as was my custom in those days, to watch the setting
sun and the rising tide from the dangerous height
of the Camel's Back, otherwise known as the Slab,
a miniature rocky peninsula, so called from its pecu-
liar shape and the character of its western surface —
a sheer reach of unbroken rock, rising some eighty
feet from an inaccessible shingle beach. The strata
have been half inverted and then stayed, so that the
action of rain and land streams cleaves the grain of
the rock in an almost vertical line. This curious
clifl' stretches out into the Atlantic at right angles
to the shore ; its eastern side is steep but jagged ;
173
174 LOOKING IN THE GLASS.
the top is an horizontal a7'ete^ a faint sheep-track
taking up all the width, and even this is interrupted
by one pinnacle — the hump of the camel — round
which you must scramble to reach the end, where
showers of snowy foam dash up from the rocks
below. In windy weather this pathway was not
practicable at all. The tale was told of a coast-
guardman who was blown ofT it into the sea, as he
was trying to carry the rocket apparatus to the end
in reach of a sinking smack with three men holding
on to the rigging. Once or twice, without any
assignable cause, my head failed me at the passage,
and I turned back. Ordinarily I went on to a spot
about two yards from the end of the point, where
the rock had begun to break up into spray- worn
fragments, and the escarpment was a shade less
steep. Here, on a slope like a not too gothic gable,
are two ledges, just wide enough to serve, one as
seat, and the other as footstool, to any lover of unin-
habited nature. The real charm of the seashore is
in its lifelessness.
On the afternoon I speak of, I had been sitting
sonje two hours divided between Beranger's songs
and the sense of perilous ease attendant on perfect
physical comfort in a situation where the nerves are
not quite at rest. The whole of the narrow cove
below me, or rather behind — for deep water was
running at my feet, and I had to look backwards
to realize the height of the straight, foreshortened
LOOKING IN THE GLASS. 175
precipice, down which the eye fell easily — the
rugged inlet that had taken lives, bad and indiffer-
ent, seemed tilled up to the overhanging turf at top
with a rosy mist. The sky had been too cloudless
for much display of coloring, but the crimson after-
glow was deep and oppressive. It was one of those
nights wdien the brassy red of the heavens' concave
seems impending to crush the beholder ; it draws
nearer and nearer, and then — I for one had rather
die under its ever-nearing weight — then the glori-
ous blood of gods, the awful spiritual life, curdles
and pales ; black cinders and ashy emptiness mock
the sight, and a chill of disappointment and self-
contempt ends the diurnal tragedy.
So it was once more, and then an afterpiece of
moony resignation ; the icy horrors of another sun-
rise have frightened back to us the softest breezes
of noon, a less arrogant luminary rewards our forti-
tude, and a purer light streams over sea and sky ;
but the earth is gray till morning — pale gray with
sharp black shadows.
But the last ray of sunlight had not quite left the
sky I was watching shiveringiy ; tlie plash of the
waves deadens every other sound, and I did not hear
a footstep on the path behind me. I started and
nearly slipped — where shall I find another so easy
descent to the ghostly groves of Avcrnus? — when
a light rug was thrown softly on my shoulders from
above. I looked up, and saw dimly the face of a
176 LOOKING IN THE GLASS.
man some five-and-thirty, whose features struck me
as familiar — I was going to say pleasing. I, at any
rate, liked the ox-like melancholy of his dark brown
eyes, and the gentleness, which one is almost
obliged to call sweetness, of his smile, candid like
that of a German professor. He smiled while apol-
ogizing for the abruptness with which he had exe-
cuted Mrs. Latham Brown's commission, and
dilating on her anxiety lest the sudden chill should
affect my chest, then supposed to be delicate. I
gravely thanked him for having removed the only
difficulty in the way of my passing the night where
I was, and then he continued to talk.
He (I soon recognized Mr. Herbert L ) had
arrived unexpectedly on a visit to his cousins ; this
was the beginning — of our acquaintance, I mean.
Let me make haste on to the end — the end, because
of course it is a chance whether we meet again after
he has traced most rivers in Asia and Africa to their
very uninteresting sources. In the course of the
next month we met constantly, as people do in the
country, and as constantly fell into the inconclusive,
desultory converse touching nature, art, and their
compound humanity, natural to people not old or
illustrious enough to have lost the trick of opinion-
atedness. He had a knack of turning up at all my
favorite haunts, and did so with sucli a fatality, that
I had a momentary and absurd feeling of injury at
his not having discovered my chief favorite of alj,
LOOKING IN THE GLASS. i77
where I went before breakfast the morning of the
day we Icrft Westream.
The approach v/as through the abbey grounds,
an unoccupied 2^l6^sure seat much favored by
tourists. Avoiding the house, one passed into a
rough shrubbery path winding downwards on the
left hand, and on the right shortly ending in a rock-
hewn staircase. This I followed through a natural
fissure enlarged by art, and emerged on a belfry-
like ledge, just broad enough to give standing room
for two, or to let 'ta^ solitary visitor lie at length,
and, leaning on his elbows, look over the edge and
watch the pebbles drop sheer into the blue water.
I was near the top of a precipitous sandstone cliff,
on the face of which sea-ferns and choice flowers
defied the collector ; immediately belovv' was a deep
inlet of clear water washing into quaint, inacces-
sible caverns : in front an overhanging rock threat-
ening my loop-hole from above, while the mossy
twisted roots and stem of a stunted oak made a
pillow for arm and head. Hereon I leant, losing
count of time as the dazzling sun, the cool glitter
of the early hour, the startled breaths of a southern
wind, the gulls swooping and sailing beneath me,
lulled me into a sort of dizzy rapture, till the
pleasure melted into a half-conscious dread — could
it be that Nature's gifts were free ? — and I wholly
woke, and, roused with difficulty, doubted w^hat
such dream, such vision might show.
178 LOOKING IN THE GLASS.
That is the wooing of the great god Pan. Love
is loneHness ; the self expands to cherish all it can
embrace, and, reflected upon its adopted mirror, it
expands and ascends till it becomes too subtle for
a medium, and then it is re-absorbed into the selfish,
soulless beloved. Bah ! I gaze from a height on
the lovely colors of sky and sea-weed till I envy the
birds their seasick rocking in mid-air, and would
fain dissolve into the view ; but I am sane enough
to know that pebbles are hard, and a corpse
devoured by crabs as unpicturesque as the public-
houses where coroners' juries sit ; so I forbear to
throw myself headlong. But, as I say, that is the
wooing of the great god Pan, and it is even so the
daughters of men are won. Who will teach them
that lovers' hearts are harder than flinty shingle,
and that 'twere better crabs should multiply than
sinners ?
I paid my farewells to this spot uninterrupted.
It was but three weeks ere we went our several
ways, but I felt as if something was gone to which
I had accustomed myself. During a short visit to
Mrs. in town, I met him again in society,
which allowed of shorter tete-li-tetcs than West-
ream, and I attributed to the change of circum-
stances the fiict of his adopting a more demonstra-
tive and less confidential manner ; and yet I never
knew any one try to flirt with me. When I went
home, I could not read steadily, I wrote spasmodi-
LOOKING IN THE GLASS. 179
cally, I dawdled away the days ; it seemed as if
something must happen to break up my habits, and
it was not worth while renewing them for so short
a time. By and by he came down to our neighbor-
hood, to see his publisher and the country, he said :
to see me, my aunt's maid slowly and reluctantly
began to suspect. I do believe she thinks my aunt
and I stay single out of deference to her advice.
The next two months were the most miserable of
my life. There is no disguising the fact. Herbert
and I (we learnt to use Christian names in Corn-
wall) — Herbert and I might have loved each other
more passionately than three-fourths of the couples
joined together in holy matrimony ; but there was
no laith in our love, so pride was stronger than it.
He might have taught me to love him, I might have
led him to wish to teach ; instead, we both felt like
moths of one mind in view of a brilliant candle.
In marrying me, he would have sacrificed strong
tastes to a preference that would need explaining to
his friends ; in marrying him, I should have made
the sacrifice of proud self-sufiiciency which some
women v/ill only render to Sathanas eloquent as an
angel of light. (And only genius and dishonesty
are eloquent, but the first is rare ; that is why good
women mispj^ace their afiection.)
A woman who is won before she is wooed is the
w^orst part of a man : I did not even wish to be
wooed. He thought me cold ; I thought him —
l8o LOOKING IN THE GLASS.
well, for a poet, ungenerous ; for a man, irresolute.
Sometimes I was possessed with a nervous terror
lest he should speak words which must put an end
to the armed neutrality of our friendship, and yet
I would have given worlds could we have come to
an understanding, on points concerning which there
was nothing to explain, even if they had admitted
of explanation. Had we loved — for, mind you,
we never really went as far as that — had we loved,
we should have aime d'amou?'^ as our neighbors
say ; but a g7'ande fassion is dangerous : fate bal-
ances it impartially between heaven and hell, and
chance may turn the scale either way. We were
each jealous, not of any third person, but of the
part of each other's mind which maintained its
independence : we were each prudent ; he would
not risk his material, nor I my spiritual future : we
were each unjust in throwing on the other the
blame of our own conduct and character : wx both,
I think, regretted the difficulties these placed in the
way of the harniony we both, I think, desired.
His — what shall I call it ? It was half admiration
and a quarter liking ; — his feelings towards me
were manifest enough to have compromised any
one less " serious " than myself with any one
younger or less important than him. As it was,
my friends — had I had any to speak of — might, on
the face of it, have accused him of trifling with my
feelings, had they credited me with such weak-
LOOKING IN THE GLASS. I5I
nesses ; yet at this moment he believes, I have no
doubt, that it only rested with me to accept and
recompense the homage he had not quite made up
his mind to tender. Love bought with coquetry,
or at least with the frank appeals of voluntary fas-
cination, may be as deep and true as any, but the
price put it out of my reach. Have I, then, any-
thing to complain of or regret.^ I do neither,
because I make a rule of not regretting what follows
from the known and accepted nature of things.
Yet it is certain that to part from Herbert L
with the possibilities of our relation undeveloped
was the first and only purel}^ personal and senti-
mental grief I remember to have experienced.
I had better come back to narrative. Just six
months ago, at nine in the evening, the moon was
beginning to shine and the air to soften after a frosty
day. I can never resist the temptation of that
opaque, blue brilliancy. I threw the window up
and stepped out on the lawn, sent Willy to tell the
elders I was gone down to the sea, and without
waiting for remonstrances about night air or tipsy
sailors, I jumped down the garden wall, and, hurry-
ing over the heaps of mal-odorous debris beyond,
soon reached the firm sand.
Then I began to feel the silence and solitude op-
pressive, and I walked faster and faster, as if to
escape from it. I was horribly afraid of the dark
as a child, and my own shadow on the broad sands
1 83 LOOKING IN THE GLASS.
gave me even then a kind of shiver. I felt ahuost
as if I had escaped an enemy when I reached the
broken rocks where I could not see it ; there was
comfort in the fragments of sandstone, in the ivy
hanging down to the water's edge, in the sea-weed
reefs — in anything that shared that sweet heartless
light. I had been striding on over the rough stones
for perhaps ten minutes, when I heard steps and
then his voice. He had called to bid us good-by,
and my aunt had begged him to overtake, protect
and bring me back ; he said nothing about the last.
We came soon to a little shingly cove, and I sat
down upon the pebbles still glistening in the moon-
light from the receding tide (except clumps of
heather there is no better couch than fine shingle) .
He asked my leave to light a cigar, and I praised
the fragrant fumes as I threw stones from one hand
to the other, or into a little pool on my left. The
wind was from the land, and by and by I heard
eleven strike ; we rose simultaneously, and neither
spoke till we were half-way over the reach of sand.
Then I turned to look at the water ; little but
foam to be seen sweeping down with the furious
back-draught of the waves, or tossed high into the
moonlight on rough crests shutting out the horizon.
He asked me, I think, why I was so fond of the
sea. I answered sleepily that I felt sorry for it ;
the moon and the earth were tyrannical, and I
should like the ocean with one deep sigh to find its
LOOKING IN THE GLASS. 183
level over all, and then its labored breathing would
not seem so painful to me. Then another silence.
As we neared the house he said, " I think I shall
join that tour, Hester."
/.* " They have an attractive programme."
He: "Yes: a three years' absence from Eng-
land."
/.• '• One place is very like another."
He : '' And one woman ? "
/: ""No; there is a difference amongst them:
some 'are handsome and some plain; all strange
countries have their beauties."
I/e : '• I did not mean physically ; some women
have a husband, and some a cat, — or a mastiff.
Could you ever care for any one besides Mephisto
and your aunt? "
/.' " What would the former say .^
Es steht mir an der Stirn, geschrieben,
Dass ich nicht mag eine Seele lieben."
We had reached the garden gate.
//e: "Well, I shall write to you if anything
amusing happens to us."
/; " Thanks ; you reckon to be back in time for
the next general election ? "
I/e: "Yes; my mother will have found out by
then whom she wants me to marry, and I shall have
done writing lyrics on the impossible."
We had answered each other at cross purposes
184 LOOKING IN THE GLASS.
before, but this was the last time ; next morning he
started for Constantinople. Impossible ! . . . .
Was ever anything impossible to an unscrupulous
woman ? Whose fault was it ? Why should I think
that any one was in fault at all ? All that I am I
have myself to thank for, and I will not be ungrate-
ful. Not the wealth of the Rothschilds nor the
aflection of Paul and Virginia ^vould ever have
made a happy woman of me ; yet I, who think
mj'self wiser than most, need surely not be less
contented than the many. The story is really this :
In love w^ith love, I could not love him ; in love
with loving, I cursed the truth as I felt it. In good
sooth I think it was a curse, a visitation of indig-
nant Providence. If I did not love God whom I
had not seen, how could I love my brother whom
I had seen, p?ir troppo? Was I, who had nearly
reached, and that unwoundcd, the point of resigned
and candid serenity, beyond which, let the Utilita-
rians say what they will, evil is tolerable and good
on the whole indifferent, — was I, who had done
with the troubles of life, who seemed to have half
done with life itself, — v^as I of my ow^n accord to
enter upon a triple ab^'ss of living, to undertake
responsibilities heavier than the heaviest I had ever
made a conscience of evading, to trust myself on a
wdiirlpool of wish-breeding action, to have two
bodies and one spirit — careful and troubled about
many things.'' . . . The woes of a married woman
LOOKING IN THE GLASS. . 1S5
have a name and a contemptible body apiece : th'ey
are servants, or scarlatina, or whist parties, or a
stationary income ; but these arc finite, if not tol-
erable. If tolerable, how infinitely vast is the
vague malaise of the maiden wiio, clothed with
ashes and feeding upon dust, dares not even trust
the evidence of her senses that such is the universal
food of the rebellious sons of God, wdio close their
eyes to His mercies lest they should be blinded by
the dust and ashes, in which, even to the elect, it
does seem to me, the mercies come enveloped !
Ah ! well, love is an affair of confused ideas, as
Spinoza would say, and mine are clear enough and
to spare. At least I am no Narcissus ; there is
nothing so hopelessly unamiable as a malapropos
clearness of vision. And now to sleep : thank
somebodv I I never dream . . . but I am so very
wide aw'ake ! Here is another erotic antinomy.
Love is a passion, self-impelling towards the be-
loved object, but it asks for reci^Drocity, and if the
two subject-objects rush with equal force each to
other's embrace — why, you have a deadlock, fol-
lowed, if I have not forgotten my mechanics, by a
rebound. Conclusion : a perfect love-match is hu-
manly impossible ; the practical compromise in use
waives the reciprocity ; one loves, the other is be-
.loved ; the issue for one party, any way, either
tragic or effeminate ; in no case beautiful : — that is
why we deify courtship, where love is not yet shut
1 86 . LOOKING IN THE GLASS.
out from the possibility of return by the acceptance
which stifles or stai-\'-es it.
He wrote to me once, about three months later,
with kind friendliness, after my aunt's death, asking
my plans and urging the acceptance of his sister's
invitation to spend the winter in Italy with her
daughters. I wrote half-a-dozen answers, all de-
scribing my proposed plans in terms all equally
well-adapted to distress and scandalize him, but on
reflection I sent none of them, and tried to think
that a message through his sister and another through
his nieces would serve every purpose of courtesy.
I suppose it was schoolgirlish to take refuge in
silence, but an intellectual flirtation seems to me
the inanest of any. I dislike play-acting my life.
In all contingencies the easiest course is to do noth-
ing — but grumble at the nothingness of life, when
eX nihilo^ nihil Jit,
Jftttte nnh. %rhnhs\l^.
Ask the same for me, for friends should have all things in common.
— Plato.
VIII.
IT is a mistake to say that marriage spoils friend-
ship. Few of my best friends have been singly
blessed. If your friend has a soul large enough to
love wisely and supremely well, w^iatever enriches
his life and adds to his happiness will enrich his
capacity for friendship and add to your delight in
his society. It is a poor soul that can only love one
at a time.^ If you lose your friend by marriage, of
two things, one : either he was not much loss, or
you are not. I think very often wdien people osten-
tatiously proclaim that they will withdraw from an
old intimacy because their intimate has got a wife,
they have an unconscious dread of showing their
souls in the undress of friendship to an unbiassed
eye. It is a test, and a severe one, of mutu.al love,
and more rare mutual respect, when the two who
are as one have nothing between them that an old
friend cannot wholly love ; and not less so for the
friend who comes en tiers^ to ask nothing from
either that he dares not ask from both. But if this
double difficulty can be overcome, a more than
commonly precious friendship survives. The pe-
190 LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP.
culiar fragrance of a love a deux can only be en-
joyed by those who have passed master in the art
of loving, and the rarity of these, not the selfish-
ness of happy love, is the cause of* the common error
that marriage and old friendship are incompatible
goods.
I was staying with two old and married friends in
Brittany. The so-called chateau is half a farm, the
buildings more like a farmhouse than most English
manors, but all unspoilt by modernization. I am
thinking of a May morning, when the roses hid the
tangled bushes with pink and white cushions of
sweet bloom that seemed to lose their beauty in
sheer abundance ; the path, down an avenue of
overarching roses, was strewn with fallen pink-
white rose-leaves, just flecked with blood-red dam-
ask petals ; the air was still with heat ; but Madame
V , who is a very salamander, called me to
attend her on her rounds. The white hens were
fed, the new calf talked to, and the gardener ad-
monished about the price of butter. It was refresh-
ing to see how cool and happy Madame looked in
her quaint j^rint dress, w^ith a huge parasol of the
same color shielding her stately head and the fine
benignant face, of Vv^iich the two chief beauties were
two bright brown eyes and a crown of silver waving
hair. With her white hair she looked, as she was,
between fifty and sixty, and very beautiful ; without
it she would have looked thirty, and handsome.
LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP. 191
In watching her I forgot the heat, and was led
wiUingly through garden, yard and orchard, to the
steps by the old fishpond. From a sort of grass
landing there start two flights of wide, shallow,
stone steps, gray with age, and making room here
and there in their cracks for a little pink or yellow
stonccrop ; in their deserted massiveness they
seemed fit for the approach to some palace of
sleeping beauty. Madame ascended leisurely ; I
followed, listening to her fluent, humorous chat
concerning all the neighbors, in whose private af-
fairs I was kept diligently posted up from year to
year.
Bees and butterflies filled the air with a cheerful
humming brightness. Without ceasing her talk,
Madame gathered a large sweet scabious, and let
the bloom lie loosely on her open palm. I won-
dered what she meant to do with it, but half a
minute later, as I looked at her again, a gorgeous
butterfly was resting on the flower, sucking its
sweetness, and then, yes, actually walking about
upon the lady's hand ; the little palm was white
and pink, like one of the blush roses climbing up
the parapet ; but when I gathered one and held it
alongside, the butterfly flew ofl' untempted.
A narrow grass terrace, planted vyith cherry-trees,
lay at the top of the steps, and on reaching it one
saw that the steps only led up a mound, an embank-
ment, enclosing the oblong fish-tank, where perch
192 LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP.
and eels were still to be caught by those who loved
such modest sport. There is something strangely
reposeful in the prim squareness of this old-fash-
ioned gardening ; perhaps it comes from the sug-
gestion of orderly abundance, where every flower
and fruit-tree grows so freely that even when all
rank edges are pruned off to a demure dead level,
still the remaining square-toed shrubs, straight sen-
tinels and pyramidical espaliers, prove to have lost
no more than they can afford, and are still luxuriant
with flowers, fruit and moist deep greenery. After
all, it is half an affair of climate ; where plants can
hardly be coaxed to grow at all, who can have the
heart to tease them into growing tidily? But prim
tidiness amid abundance refreshes one like a virtue ;
it savors of antique temperance and all the homely
graces of the golden mean. From whichever side
one looked, the poplars and dovecote reached sym-
metrically into the sky.
Madame spread a shawl upon the low gray para-
pet, and invited me to sit on the grass at her feet,
iiud yaire 7no7i salut like a good Catholic by a full
confession of all my sins and follies. " To begin
with," she said, with a caressing little air that it
was impossible to answer except just in the way
she wanted, " why is it that you stay with us six
weeks instead of four, and that yet you do not grow
gayer for giving us this pleasure } "
I said the pleasure of being with Madame was
LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP. 193
that she could answer as well as ask questions more
charmingly than anybody in the world.
"Then," she replied, "why do you not ask me
questions?"
Now this was exactly what, for the last fortnight
of my stav, I had been trying to summon up cour-
age to do. I asked, " Ought I not to have stayed
this fortnight?"
She said, " Elma is going to leave us this day
week."
I tried to put a thousand questions into my eyes,
and as she did not speak again fell back upon an
interrogative — " Apres ? "
She accused me of being as unreasonable as the
unreasonable king who wanted his dream inter-
preted before he had told it.
I said, " Is it not given to the best of friends to
answer thoughts that can hardly quite be spoken? "
Madame answered, " You are right : it would be
wronging Elma for you to speak of her even to so
old a friend as I am ; but though she is a sweet
woman, to whom I would not grudge my dearest
friend, she could not be hurt because I — To me
you are first — before her ; and I have a right to ask
what will be good, be best, for you, mon a7ni^
now ? "
What could I say more than she knew already —
that I wanted to know whether I might dare to
think of marriage and speak of love to Elma. I
194 LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP.
had nothing to tell Madame but what she had seen
and knew. I only knew Elma in her unapproach-
able calm ; did she ever seek or want a friend's —
not counsel — but sympathy at least? God forbid
that I should ever discuss her feelings with another,
but she owed me no such reserve ; what had she
allowed the all-seeing Madame to divine about her
feelings towards me ?
Some such questions as these reached my kind
friend's ready understanding with little help from
words, but she hesitated to reply.
After a pause she began : " Elma never spoke to
me of you — she does not speak, you know, of her-
self or feelings not of every day ; but she said to me
som.ething that I could only think of in connection
with you. If I tell it you, it sounds of bad augury,
but I do not know for certain if it is bad." She
laid her hand gently on mine and said, " One friend
cannot always save another from the pain of this
uncertainty. She is very proud and shy. Do not
think me stupid because I cannot quite guess
what, perhaps, she does not yet quite know herself.
But I am not quite, quite sure that you would find
her heart all ice and iron behind the wall of proud
reserve."
My friend was kind : I used to the uttermost a
friend's privileged ingratitude, and gave no thanks.
I could think only of the question, " Tell me what
she said.^"
LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP. 195
Madame was pitiful, and only kept me waiting
for one more proviso : " I tell you the saying; the
interpretation is not yet revealed. I was speaking,
all in the air, though I thought of more than one of
my friends, about the sweetness of a woman's life,
the glory of the power that comes w^hen a woman
has but to let herself be loved, and a strong man
grows glad to do every deed that is fair and noble
like the lady of his love. It was all a propos of the
age of chivalry ; if any names were mentioned, it
was only in our thoughts " —
" And she ? " I interrupted.
" Let me tell you it all at length. There was a
melancholic hero of romance, and he was pleading
with his lady-love : was there nothing in all the
world she wanted to have done, nothing that he
might have the pleasure of doing for her sake — he
asked no guerdon of love or hope ; only, if she had
the least preference, surely she could not be vexed
with him if he asked the little gift of le§Lve to do,
with no other reward than that, whatever she
might, with ever so faint a preference, choose not
to have left undone? I defended the faint-hearted
lover.
" Elma spoke less tranquilly than usual.
" ' You and these knights of yours fix on women
an ungracious role. How if the lady's preference
be that he should find elsewhere than in her wish
the determining motive of his life } They profess
196 LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP.
modestly they ask so little : is it a small thing to be
the mistress of a man's soul's fate? I say it is a
tyranny to tell a woman that — whether she accepts
it or not, whether she speaks or keeps silence,
whether she finds her suitor a quest to follow for
her sake, or dismisses him at once and forever —
that the burden of his doom is on her still, and the
responsibility of his fate lying inalienably at her
door. If men are helpless and to be pitied, what
else are women, I should like to know? Is it a
man's duty, too, to lay at each woman's feet the very
life she wishes to dispose of at her will ? We are
all fates — and not all kind ones — to each other :
why should women only be always called on to be
kind ? '
" Elma said all this w^ith a glitter in her soft eyes,
and a color like the faint blush of anger rising
over neck, cheek and temples. She spoke almost
angrily, and as if she were defending herself; and
therefore," Madame concluded, " I said to myself,
my friend's case is not hopeless ; people do not
defend themselves angrily unless they suspect a
danger. Elma has played at matronly independ-
ence so long that she has forgotten the first condi-
tion of that state. It is not a crime if some one
else has been the first to think or speak of love ; but
she has a generous nature, and it is possible that in
her secret mind she would count it as a crime in
herself not to have been the first to think. But I
LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP. 197
may be wrong, m}- friend ; ti*ust onl}^ your own
judgment and Eima's generous soul."
I kissed my friend's hand, and paced alone up
and down the green alley on the three sides of the
tank, learning by heart every feature in the prim
picturesqueness of the back view of the chateau and
its homely outworks. I felt chained to the spot
where the doubtful, hopeful, most doubtful oracle
was spoken. In youth one does not hesitate about
trying for the good one wishes for ; if I hesitated
now, it was not because the wishes were less strong,
but as men grow older, one notices their caution in
nothing more than this : they do not like any one but
themselves to act as executioner to their own rash
hopes.
The hours passed unheeded overhead while I let
every motive have its say in turn, and it was only
Avhen rain began to fall that I noticed the change
of temperature and an approaching storm. It was
time to prepare for the early dinner-hour and long
evening, ahVays pleasant, but somehow strangely
dreaded after to-day's revelations.
The wind had risen to a gale ; the roaring of the
distant sea mixed with the pelting rain, and the big
drawing-room grew chilly in the twilight. Madame
called for logs, and presently a cheerful blaze
crackled upon the hearth ; it was like a winter's
evening ; the shutters were closed against the
storm, and I felt as if six months had passed since
198 LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP.
the summer morning by the fishpond. The draw-
ing-room was large, dark, and many-cornered ; the
oak rafters in the roof added to the shade. The
walls were tapestried, not newly, witli patched
hangings from the bric-a-brac dealers ; the tapestry
was worn and dim with smoke and age, but it had
grow dim upon these walls, and the simper of the
ladies' faces, the cabbage-roses and the spread .pea-
cock's tail had faded into a sober harmony ; the
pictures on the walls seemed in the firelight as if
they had grown there, like shadows cast by a for-
gotten world, or pictures in the living mirror of the
Lady of Shalott.
To know the chateau at its best you must see
it in summer days and w^inter evenings, but only
Madame's witchcraft could let her guests enjoy both
between two rising suns. I said so as we four drew
round the hearth. It was one of those old chim-
neys in which the "ingle-nook" is not an empty
word. As the fire blazed upon the logs, there was
room for a ring of children to dance all round it
safely in one of their old heatlien Christmas games.
In w^inter the host and hostess always drew their
arm-chairs inside the chimney, while the guests
circled round in front. This evening the husband
and wife sat opposite by the chimney breasts ; I
was next to Madame, and the other lady by the
Admiral. It is not easy to look one's next neighbor
in the face : we both kept our eyes upon tlie fire.
LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP. 199
I reminded Madame of past winter evenings, and
the strange collection of stories that were told when
no gue^st was allowed to escape the toll.
'•'• Let us have some stories to-night," said the
Admiral ; " and it is Madame's turn to begin."
The special charm of the chateau is that nothing
ever takes our host and hostess at a loss. There is
an answer ready for every saying, a prompt device
for contenting each casual vv^ish. I wished this
evening above everything to avoid the risks of con-
versation, and I prayed that Madame would tell us
a long, sad romance to match the wailings of the
w^ind.
She said: " Elma and I have been reading old
French romances, but she grew tired of the hard-
hearted ladies and their languishing cavaliers ; she
would read no more, and thus she missed the story
of the Lady of Eza and her loyal servdng-man.
Shall I tell you that?"
The listening trio w^ith one voice bade her tell on.
She told us of a castle perched on a rocky peak
by the southern sea ; the sea washed its feet on one
side ; a torrent-bed with steep wooded sides guarded
another, and bare rocky precipices the third ; while
from the landward north a steep narrow stony
track zigzagged up the least inaccessible slope of
the hill. Long ago, when the castle was still
famed for many gallant sieges, when Moors and
pirates and near rivals, who coveted the strongest
200 LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP,
Stronghold on the coast, brought their forces in
turn against it — in those days of long ago a fair
maiden was left sole heiress of the famous keep,
and her youth was beset with stormy wooings, till
in her fourteenth year a powerful Baron, with
scarred face and an arm few cared to meet in
battle, married her in the castle chapel, though
'twas said he brought tlie priest to read the service
with him, and came an uninvited, unwished guest.
Among the men-at-arms of the castle was a found-
ling youth, brought up in charity by the maiden's
father — a silent, awkward youth, speaking slowly,
and with a strange accent, as if haunted by the
memory of his unknown parents' tongue. And
whatsoever the lady's wish might be, he ran to do
her will, but for the most part with a stupid haste
that brought him little thanks. When she was a
thoughtless child, and asked for a tame eaglet to
play witli, or blue hepaticas to deck Our Lady's
shrine in winter, Uc, the stranger, would dash
through the enemies' border for the flowers, and lie
in prison till their season was over ; or he would
haunt the rocks for weeks and come back witli the
screaming nesdings and a broken arm, when the
child had forgotten her fancy.
On this night, when the Baron craved the castle's
hospitality, and the maiden's mother dared not re-
fuse to let him in, the maiden whispered to her ser-
vant, " Fly, tell my cousin Perdigon of Peglia to
LOVE AXD FRIENDSHIP. 20I
bring fleet horses to the road above Turbia. and
meet me himself at the cross by the fountain at foot
of the castle path. He must wait there till morn-
ing, but ere midnight I must., I will, be there."
And the sen'ing-man stole off from his watch, and
rode and ran to the tall eyrie of Peglia, the Eza of
the hills, where the young knight was holding revel ;
and, pray as he would, even to the avowing that he
bore a message from the maid of Eza, either no
messasfe reached the knig^ht, or none was heeded in
his revels. Next morning, indeed, he chid the lady's
messens^er for not having- foug^ht his wav throuo^h
the guards and forced a hearing for her words ; and
he set forth then with horses, and rode on to the
veiy castle gates, but maid and castle were the
Baron's now. and the lady frowned upon her servant.
And so. again and again the henchman risked life
and limbs in her ser\-ice, and still her will was
missed, or else another had the thanks. Six times,
as boy and man, Ma, the stranger, pressed for\vard
in her needs, and each time she bade another do her
will. The last time the charge was to go and bring
news of how her tnie knight fared. He was with
the King's troops in Provence, while the Baron wore
the cross in Palestine. The Knight Perdigon was
slain, and the little old trooper blessed the saints
that this time at least she had refused his sen-ice.
Then the next year she died, and the bier was to
be borne solemnly to lie in state in the castle chapel,
302 LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP.
and the chief mourners walked at the head and feet,
bearing a massive taper. Her husband, her brother
(by the left hand) , and her young son were there,
and the fourth place \\3.s claimed by fierce kinsmen
of equal degree. The Baron looked round and knit
his brow, for the last eager claim was made by the
twin brother of that dead cousin Perdigon, whose
lute-twanging was all too sweet to her ears in life.
He looked round upon the squires and stalwart men-
at-arms, till his eye met Uc, the stranger.
' ' How long hast thou served my lady ? "
The wrinkled,, wooden features hardly moved,
and a quavering voice made answer —
" Seven times seven years," he said, " as the clock
strikes the hour before this next midnight."
The Baron smiled, well pleased.
" The knave can reckon," quoth he ; " forty-nine
years ago, as the clock struck eleven at night, my
lady's father gave shelter to a wailing beggar's brat,
and we have heard him tell that he hath sei"ved one
mistress ever since, and because none have served
her longer — nor I trow loved more loyally — do
thou, Uc, the stranger, bear the fourth taper."
None can say whether it was joy or fear or a
blind awe, as of the last judgment and the open
gates of heaven and hell, that filled the old trooper's
silent soul. They bore his lady to the chapel, and
the light of his taper never shook or wavered ; then
as the priests chanted their requiem, the mourners
LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP. 203
knelt, two at the head of the uplifted bier, and the
little son and the old serving-man side by side at
the feet. The long chants were over, the curling
incense only lingered like a cloud round the roof,
the solemn blessing had been said, and three of the
mourners rose, to return as they had come to the
w^orld that she had left. But, upright with the
taper between his hands, like an uplifted banner in
the battle's charge, the old sei*\'ing-man knelt still ;
they spoke to him in a whispered voice, and he
made no sign. No one dared to touch him, and the
little son cried out —
" Father ! why are his eyes open when he does
not see ? "
The Baron said, " Let him watch by his lady to-
night. Did I not tell you his love and sei'\'ice were
more faithful than we all ? "
And through the night the dead henchman knelt
at the feet of the dead lady ; and on the morrow,
when they raised the chapel floor, and laid her in
the stone coffin in the vault below, the man-at-
arms knelt still, stiff and cold as a statue of stone
within his armor. So they closed his visor, and
placed a cross in the clenched hands where the
taper had burnt itself out unheeded, and left him
kneeling in the vault at his lady's feet. And five
centuries afterwards a skeleton in armor was found
kneeling still, cross in hand, at the foot of the coffin
where the Baron's bones lay at his lady's side.
304,. LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP.
Perhaps it was more the dim firelight and Ma-
dame's sweet voice than the letter of the old ro-
mance that held her hearers silent : it was a foolish
tale to let one's self be moved by, yet I was glad
when Elma said —
" At least, this lady was not cruel, and the hench-
man had his reward ; for they tell us to call no man
fortunate or wretched until we know the manner of
his death."
The Admiral said it was a dismal tale, but if the
ladies liked to cry, he would tell them another,
wherein il y en avait de quoi.
The Admiral's tales were seldom short, and we
composed ourselves to listen at ease. He was telling
about a voyage of his own to South America, and it
was not necessary to attend closely. I looked fur-
tively at my neighbor ; it was strange how seldom it
seemed possible to let one's eyes rest upon her face
for as long as it was natural to wish, and the diffi-
culty added to the longing for the rare, sweet pleas-
ure. I ^vatched her now ; she was listening quite
pensively, with her eyes fixed upon a burning log,
from which red-hot fragments kept falling upon a
little heap of ashes, that turned from red to gray and
white as they lay ; I might therefore look my fill.
There was a faint far-away touch of Spanish — it
might be Moorish — blood in her veins, and there
was something Oriental in the softness of her large
LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP, 205
brown eyes, when she was looking, as now, uncon-
cernedly into space.
The tender sweetness of her face and movements
when she was or felt herself alone, or alone with
children, seemed to crystallize involuntarily into a
dignified reserve if any other voice or eye was near.
I do not know if it was first assumed in self-defence ;
if so, it was a useless weapon, for that unconscious
air of calm repose acted like a spell. She used to
be seriously annoyed by the hosts of applicants who,
as she travelled with her father, prayed him for
leave to seek her hand. She was eight-and^twenty
now ; the first year of orphanhood was nearly over ;
but perhaps she looked older than this. A wife of
eight-and-twenty is very young. Elma seemed to
have attained a ripe wisdom, most unlike of all to
those women, not quite young, who never cease to
be called "girls" until they marry. In travelling
abroad with her father, Elma was usually taken by
strangers for his wife — a mistake which she did not
correct unless obliged ; she said it saved trouble and
made people treat her with more respect.
Respect was the first feeling she inspired, admira-
tion the second — and not the last! But one was
•afraid of her still ; she had such a statuesque repose,
such an air of asking nothing from any man, that it
seemed in one's imagination like an insult to ofier
her the homage on which her eyes fell only with
calm surprise. She loved her father, old friends of
2o6 LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP.
his and of her youth, and all little children^ and
she smiled on the adoration of schoolboys ; but the
world of marriageable men seemed not to exist for
her, or to exist as it does for a contented matron.
It was one of her chief attractions to me that she
seemed to possess in her own right the composure
and content which belongs to men and women who
have sought and found. In unattractive women the
same indifference repels us as discourtesy ; it is a
gratuitous incivility to refuse what we do not for a
moment mean to ask for, but not to offer that which
vv^e cannot but desire eagerly, seems a wise and
sweet reserve. Anyway, a man who has waited
till near forty without marrying, has no time to lose
with a bride needing to put away childish things.
The man who could win Elma would enter at once
upon a boundless ocean of still happiness, unchang-
ing as the gracious calm of her simplest movement.
"Now, there are giants in Patagonia" — the
Admiral had apparently finished his voyage, and
there was a change in the intonation of his voice
which roused me like a call. I began to listen,
and as I listened, I dared not keep my eyes on
Elma's face.
" There are giants in Patagonia ; and in some
regions of South America, which I should not like
to name lest any of you should have friends within
a thousand miles, there are sorceresses too. My
learned friend, the Herr Doktor Liebdiinkeln, who
LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP. 207
is corresponding member of all the folklore societies
of Europe, assures me that it is from this region,
in the neighborhood of Patagonia, that all known
versions of a widespread folk-tale are derived —
the tale, to wit, of the giant with no heart in his
body.
"According to the story, ladies" (folklore is one
of my hobbies, so the gallant Admiral did not ven-
ture to look my way) , ' ' some princesses skilled in
magic have the art of charming the hearts of giants
out of their bodies. If, when this is done, the
giant can get hold of his own heart again, and se-
curely wrap it up in silver paper in an ivory casket,
in a cedar box, in a golden case, in a leaden coffer,
and then hide the coffer in a basket of flags in the
nest of an unknown bird, in the heart of the Invisi-
ble Tree that grows at the top of the Inaccessible
Hills, then the giant will be quite safe, and the
princess lives with him, and cooks his food, and
combs his beard, and never thinks of the prince of
her own race who is roaming the world in search
of her.
'' Now giants, like men and princes, are good and
bad, and it is mostly the bad giants who have hid-
den their hearts in the Inaccessible Hills ; so in the
stories, when the true prince finds his way, in spite
of dragons, ogresses and lions, to the heart of the
Invisible Tree, and opens all the coverings, and
squeezes the giant's heart till he dies, and the prin-
2o8 LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP.
cess is set free from her enchantment, no one is
sorry for the giant.
" But in folk-tales, as Herr Doktor Liebdiinkeln
and our friend Willy Welshman here will tell you,
every story is told two ways, with the lights and
shadows changing places ; and in my true story you
will be sorry for Eieiaio. For there is a secret that
bad fairies tell to royal god-daughters, w^ho are
wicked too, and this is, that if the princess who has
charmed the giant's heart out of his body can make
him look the other way, and snatch it from him be-
fore he has wrapped it up in the silver paper in the
ivory casket, in the cedar box, in the golden case,
in the leaden coffer, or before he has hidden the
leaden coffer in the basket of flags in the nest of the
unknown bird, in the heart of the Invisible Tree
that grows at the top of the Inaccessible Hills, then
she will hold the giant's life in her hands, and in-
stead of cooking his food and combing his beard,
she may make the giant fetch and do whatever she
is pleased to command him.
"It is said that the first giant w^ho put his heart
away in the Inaccessible Hills had great difficulty
in finding a sorceress to help him. They all knew
that he did not mean to let them keep it for him,
and that he only wanted to get rid of it in order to
be invulnerable in battle ; for, of course, when a
giant has no heart in his body no blows can hurt or
weapons slay him. A sword or bullet can pass
L O VE AND FRIENDSHIP. 209
right through where men's hearts grow and he only
laughs — a terrible laugh, that freezes the enemy's
blood, and sometimes kills him with terror before
the return blow -falls. A giant with no heart in his
body is never tired, or hungry, or disappointed ; he
can conquer kingdoms, because he never wants
them too much to be able to wait for the right
moment ; and when the kingdoms are his, he gives
them away as easily, to the first who asks him,
because (people whisper) he ' has no heart to keep
them.' These giants are cruel, and some people
mistake them for vampires, because they often stab
their victims through the heart and then pretend
they did not know such wounds were mortal.
" Well, after the voyage in La Belle youvence^
about which I was telling you, we were put ashore
in Patagonia, and before we left the country I
learned to know some of the giants ^vho live there,
more particularly one of them, whose name was
Eieiaio, and — ladies, don't be frightened — you
may believe an old sailor when I tell you he had
got no heart in his body. He walked about and
was none the worse ; but the place where his heart
had been was just a hollow cavity, quite healed and
skinned over, so much so that he said it would be
no use to put his heart back now — it could never
grow again so as to live and beat inside him.
"It is not etiquette in this country to ask a giant
any questions about where he keeps his heart, be-
2ia LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP.
cause everybody knows that if the answer w^as over-
heard by or repeated to any rash or mischievous
persons, tliey might use the power thus given
them to murder the confiding giant. Still even in
Patagonia there are whispering gossips, and I soon
found it was generally believed (and this w^as one
reason w4iy good mothers and daughters were a lit-
tle cool to my friend) , that instead of being safely
stored away in the Inaccessible Hills, Eieiaio's
heart was kept by a strange princess from the
Lands of the Rising Sun, called the Donna Vio-
lante.
" She had long black hair that reached down to
her feet, and large black eyes that sometimes flashed
and sometimes melted, and she had tiny pearl-white
hands and a foot so tiny, Chinese women's slippers
were almost long enough for her to wear. Her
dress was of soft amber silk, and black lace hung
over her head and neck and round white arms.
She carried a large fan of peacocks' feathers, and a
little round white fluffy dog, both of which, it was
said, she used in her enchantments ; and when she
danced the Zama9ueca, the stars stood still to see
her, and the giants' hearts leaped for joy.
"After setting our party ashore, La Belle Jou-
vence was to go through the Straits of Magellan,
and take observations of the tides and currents
about that dangerous coast. I had leave to make
an expedition across country and rejoin the ship at
LOVE AND FRIEND SHIP. 2 1 1
Santiago, and Eleiaio agi-eed to accompany the ex-
ploring party. The Inaccessible Hills were said
by tradition to lie somewhere behind the highest
peaks of the Andes, that would be in sight from our
route ; and he had some thoughts of persuading
Donna Violante to relinquish her prize and let him
follow the custom of his fathers, and place his heart
in safety in the nest of the unknown bird.
"The lady dwelt in a magic palace ty a lake;
an impenetrable hedge of aloes and cactus sur-
rounded her magic garden, where all the gorgeous
flowers of the tropics bloomed among delicious
fruits from every clime. There \vas a spell upon
the palace, forbidding any kind of human work to
be done by its inmates ; to eat, and drink, and sleep
and play, and sleep and play, and drink the sweet
iced juice of the abounding fruits, and eat and sleep
again : this was the day's business for the human
guests ; but we could not escape the dread con-
jecture that unearthly rites went on unseen, and
that it was here the awful spells were worked by
which the hearts were drawn out of the groaning
giants' bodies. By night unearthly shrieks and
sighs were heard — at least I thought so in my
sleep, though by the time I had awoke these sounds
were changed, no doubt by magic, into the twang-
ing of a guitar outside the window, or a whispered
duet under the magnolia boughs. And when I
ventured to speak to Eieiaio of these sounds, he
212 LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP.
warned me to let no one know I heard them ; and
he added, as if to comfort me, that though the cry
sounded Hke a human agony, still they were uttered
by beings whom none can force to undergo the
pain. The giant and the sorceress must agree to-
gether for the horrid spell to work.
" Now, ladies, I have seen many horrid things in
my travels ; I have seen a human body half-carvxd
by feasting cannibals ; I have seen starved families
lying dead by the roadside in India ; I have seen
the dungeons of Bomba's Naples and the prisoners
in a Russian mine ; I have seen the hideous gayety
of drunken vice in a Parisian den ; but I never felt
a shudder of more horrid fear than on the day when
I found out where Eieiaio's heart was kept.
' ' But I must tell you first about another way in
which the giants' hearts can be kept safely.
" If they are hidden away in the Invisible Hills, it
is just the same as if the giant had no heart at all, it
grows cold and hard because there is no warm blood
to fill it ; they feel no pain or pleasure, and if they
do good or wicked things it is without knowing
what they are doing. But if, when the heart first
comes out of his body, the giant can find a little
child or a maid who has never had an evil thought,
and gives his still warm heart to one of these to
have and hold and cherish, it is just the same as if
his heart were still beating and living in its proper
place, with a happy glow all round. The little
LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP. 213
child or the maid who has never had an evil
thought carries her charge about with her tenderly,
in soft warm hands, and if she is obliged to lay it
aside for a moment she puts it down gently, with a
kind caress, and says to it, ' Lie still, little heart,'
and then the heart and the giant sleep and have
happy dreams till she comes back and bids it wake,
and carries it again tenderly as a mother does a
child.
*' Now when Eieiaio gave his heart to the Senora,
he thought she was one of those guileless maids or
children, for she was able by her enchantments to
make herself look young and good, half like one of
these true guardians and half like the other, for no
magic can quite imitate a true child and maid. But
Eieiaio was deceived, and still when I urged him to
break the enchantment and let me force the Senora
to relinquish her prey, he would not quite believe
me, and said, ' Nay, but surely she is young and
good : she plays with my heart now — she is only
young ; but when she has done with playing she
will take it up again in soft gentle hunds, and
carry it with her tenderly, and I shall live again,
and feel it beat within me, with a happy glow all
round.'
" But though he said this, and by her enchant-
ments she had power to make him almost believe
it, I knew that he had come to the magic villa now
in hopes of moving her to let him have his heart
214 LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP.
again, because of the strange fits of sickness that
had attacked him of late. He went to English
medicine men, and they talked about angina pec-
toris and rheumatism of the heart : the science of
the Old World is in its infancy, and Eieiaio did not
dare to tell them, lest they should have thought him
mad, that the gnawing ache which seized him could
not come from rheumatism of the heart when his
heart was a thousand miles away.
" And now I must tell you how I learnt where
the Senora really kept his heart.
" She used to feed the little white fluffy dog, who
was one of the instruments of her enchantment,
with chocolate and sweetmeats, and there was an
embroidered velvet reticule full of these dainties
always lying about upon her sofa-table. One day
I noticed that there were two such reticules, just
alike, lying together. Fluff was begging, with one
paw up, his head cocked wickedly on one side, and
a black eye winking at his mistress. She took up
one of the velvet bags, and carelessly, while she
was looking the other way, seemed to feel in it for
a bonbon.
"Eieiaio turned pale, the veins on his forehead
were knotted as if with pain, and I thought he was
about to faint. I got up to go to him, but mean-
while the color came back to his face, and I heard
the Senora laugh, and say she had been lookingjn
the wrong bag.
LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP. 215
'' The little scene made an uncomfortable im-
pression on me, and gradually I made sure that
Donna Violante kept the giant's heart in the second
velvet reticule, and that when he turned pale, as if
on the verge of death, it v^^as because she had
tossed the reticule upon the ground for Fluff to play
with, or was scrunching it unkindly into hidden
corners when she wanted it to be out of the way.
" Once I came in as Fluff was worrying the bag,
which she pretended was the one that held the bon-
bons, and he was to show his cleverness by untying
the strings and getting one out for himself. Eieiaio
was in the room as the sorceress watched this cruel
sport, and he sat pale and silent as a ghost while the
little fiend's paws trampled on his life. I snatched
the bag away, and was about to give it to Eieiaio
and make the sign of the cross, upon which, you
know, the sorceress and all her enchantments would
have vanished away into a shower of sulphurous
dust. But a spell was on my friend, and with a sad
smile he gave it back to the Senora, saying, ' Keep
it, or give it back to me yourself.'
" Well, this is nearly the end of the story.
Things came to a crisis after Donna Violante was
appealed to by another giant whose name was
Eieiulo, to take his heart and keep it too. He had
been caught as a young orphan by some Wesley an
missionaries, and brought up by them in a college
where he had learnt arithmetic ; and though he had
2 1 6 LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP.
escaped from them and returned to the manners and
religion of his ancestors, still he could do simple
sums in a way unusual among the giants ; and he
reckoned that the Senora had only two hands, and
that therefore she could only take charge safely of
at most two giants' hearts at a time.
"After the sign of the cross, there is nothing sor-
ceresses dread so much as arithmetic ; and Donna
Violante was very angry at being asked how many
hearts she had in her keeping. She showed her
empty hands, and pretended she had none, and all
the while she had got Eieiaio's heart tucked away
under the sofa-cushion, between a rosary and a
French novel, and she leant her elbows on it as she
talked, and I saw my friend writhe under the mali-
cious digs she gave his heart as she moved lan-
guidly from one graceful pose to another.
"After this there was an angry scene between
them, and at last Eieiaio uttered the fatal words,
' Give me back my heart,' and in his anger he
added rashly, ' and then you will have room for
Eieiulo's if he isn't too wise to give it you.'
" They w^ere the last words Eieiaio spoke. She
smiled fiendishly, and opened the strings of the
little bag and took his heart in her hand, saying,
' When you gave it me I promised to keep it as
long as you lived ; I will be better than my word,
and keep it longer. I will never part with it at all ;
its ashes will take very little room — I will wear it
LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP, 217
in my ring instead . of this black drop oi mortal
poison.' She kept one hand clenched round his
heart — Eieiaio felt his life ebbing — as she showed
him a ring like that King Mithridates wore, and
then she let the one black drop of mortal poison
fall on Eieiaio's heart.
'' The stories say that the giants fall down dead
when their heart is killed ; but to get at the whole
truth about these strange things you must hear the
story from somebody who has seen what happens.
The giants whose hearts are in the right place are
not so much taller than ordinary men ; they only
seem so because of their wonderful strength and
other gifts. They can hear the grass grow, and see
what men and women think ; they know where the
Spice Islands are without crossing the sea, by their
scent ; they eat the sunlight and drink the falling dew,
they understand the language of birds and beasts,
an4 their hands grasp tools a thousand miles away.
" All this is changed when their heart- is killed :
they fall into a heap that is still shaped like a dead
man's body, and the shape moves about by cords
and pulleys, like a frog wound up to jump ; but
they neither see, nor hear, nor taste ; they know
and feel and understand nothing any more, because
their heart is killed. All this Eieiaio knew, but he
could neither move nor speak ; the sorceress let the
black drop fall upon his quivering heart — there
was a sudden flash."
2l8 LOVE AND FRIENDSHIP,
At this moment something uncanny happened !
The fire was burning low, and the Admiral's voice
was hollow, to match his grisly theme ; at this
moment there was a flash, and a sharp explosion
sounded. It was enough to make one believe in
witchcraft. A piece of flaming wood had broken
off' with a crack, and leapt, all glowing, into Elma's
lap. I started forward to snatch it away before her
dress was scorched, but she too started, and as I
grasped the burning fragments in my hand, her
hands clasped mine above it : she held them fast,
and I thought the teai*s stood in her eyes. My
hand felt like the giant's heart, caressed by a maid
who has no evil thoughts. Then she recollected
herself, and I threw the cinder back upon the
hearth. Madame poked the logs into a blaze, and
the Admiral said that was all the story.
We had been married seven years before I ven-
tured to ask Elma if she thought it was the giant's
heart that had leapt into her lap for safety. She
smiled then a little consciously, and for all answer
asked, " Shall I write to Madame to expect us on
the first of May?"
" Yes," I said, " and the Admiral, with Elmina's
love, to get his stories ready ; but he must never
tell her about Eieiaio, because that made mamma
cry once."
^rlipf
The sun shall be darkened, and the moon shall not give her light.
IX.
WHEN I was young, I had great difficulty in
entering into the mental state of persons
who were unhappy on account of their beliefs or
doubts. That people should doubt and wish to be-
lieve, or believe and hesitate as to whether they
ought not rather to doubt, was something of a psy-
chological mystery to me. I was myself much
given to doubting accredited propositions, but then
I never doubted the appropriateness of my own
doubts, and, as an undergraduate, I earned the
character of being, like Macaulay , enviably ' ' cock-
sure " of all my own opinions. My mind seemed
to be incapable of real indecision : if there were a
subject on which I had no fixed opinion, I was pro-
visionally confident that the materials for certainty
vs^ere absent, and I was untroubled by the desire for
baseless results. I felt for the victims of doubt as
for those of any other unfortunate passion, and pit-
ied them the more because I was not able literally
to sympathize. But at last my own turn came, and
a long year of indecision remains in memory as one
blank moment of exasperating pain, associated, by
221
222 ECLIPSE,
a quaint chance, with a cold spring day and an
eclipse of the sun.
I had left Oxford for some years, during which a
school and college friendship with a man two or
three years my senior had continued to grow in
strength and intimacy. At the time I speak of he
had made a good start at the bar, and was engaged
to be married. I had a fellowship, wrote occasion-
ally for the papers, and nursed a secret resentment
against fate for not having planted me in surround-
ings which would have allowed my young wisdom
to contribute to the councils of the nation, without
the double difficulty of earning money enough to
contest a borough, and popularity enough of the
platform sort to do so successfully. The only strong
natural appetite w^ith which I was troubled, was a
taste for holding the reins, and feeling the congrega-
tion of my fellows answer to the guiding hand upon
their necks. I hadn't any exaggerated ideas of
parliamentary importance, but I felt that it would
have suited me to be an hereditary legislator, while
it didn't suit me at all to be a candidate for popular
favor, as if I had wanted power for personal reasons
of my own. Besides, I foresaw that when the
struggle for place or power is long and hard, almost
inevitably the nearer end becomes substituted for the
true and remote aim, so that one risks beginning the
real struggle lamed in one's best limbs and forgetful
of the chief reward.
ECLIPSE. 223
Hence it was with a rather sulky sense of renun-
ciation that I held back on the occasions when
ardent youth is wont to bray disinterestedly in ac-
companiment of political conflicts or advance. I
could not have what I wanted on my own terms,
and I was not inclined to put up with makeshifts.
Very likely there was a sub-conscious hope or ex-
pectation that my retiring merits would be dragged
to the light by others, and influence attained at once
witliout the struggles of competitive self-assertion ;
and as this was far from befalling, naturally the
haunting consciousness of deprivation remained the
same. I acknowledged the unreasonableness of my
discontent, but the fact remained, to the disgrace of*
my philosophy, that I was both discontented and
unreasonable. Stray bits of more or less desirable
work that came in my way were not neglected, but
on the whole I was idle, uncomfortably idle as well
as uncomfortably ambitious.
After a while it struck me that I was playing a
childish part ; it was true fate had not cast me for
the role of hero that I aias so assured of playing
best, but it was a confession of imbecility to give up
in consequence the attempt to play any part at all.
The Laureate had written that "'Man is man and
master of his fate," and it was one of the things I
had been wont to feel "cock-surest" of, that the
man who could only do his best by the help of For-
tune's favors had a screw^ loose somewhere in the
224 ECLIPSE.
knitting together of his mental system. Fortune
aiding, middle-sized folk might play a conspicuous
part, but what young man ever cared, in the secret
recesses of his soul, for a mediocre celebrity ? True
greatness would be its own circumstances.
In the absence of peremptorily determining mo-
tives, I was only too free to choose a career, and, as
a first step towards the candid consideration of alter-
natives, I thought I would have a talk with my
thriving j^ractical friend. We were both going up
to Oxford for a college meeting — his last, as he was
to be married in a month or two. The morning
after our arrival we started for an early walk ; an
eclipse of the sun was to come off, and we agreed to
see the end of it from Headington Hill rather than
be bothered with science and petticoats at the Ob-
sei*vatory.
I wonder why romance still keeps its hold upon
the phenomena of sunrise and sunset, whilst eclipses
are altogether given up to astronomers and smoked
glass ; not so much as an old woman deigns to be
awed by them. Either \m^ more superstitious than
the general, or I was strangely affected by a mere
coincidence ; any way the overcasting of my life
seemed always afterwards to date from the strange
chill darkness of that morning's eclipse. The sun
was high up in the heavens as we started, and still
so brilliant that the naked eye could hardly be said
to perceive any lessening of the radiant orb ; but a
ECLIPSE. 225
more than wintry dulness was upon the landscape,
the blue of the sky to the w^est and north was colder
than any gray, and the towers and spires of the
ancient city had a spectral air of stillness.
My friend — I will call him Anson — responded
readily to my hint that I wanted to talk about plans
and prospects of my own. This was nothing new
between us ; he had before now taken much trouble
to induce me to stand for a certain professorship,
and I had followed with at least equal interest the
story of his briefs and his courtship. We should
each have been equally ready to claim from the
other such services as pass current in fraternal
friendship, equally ready to rely with cheerful
confidence on the gratitude of whichever had the
luck to play benefactor for the nonce. But this
time I wanted Anson not so much to help as to
advise, and with this intent I thought it needful to
put him in possession of all the circumstances.
Now to me the first essential circumstance to take
as a starting-point was the underlying feeling that
fate was against me, and that, in common wisdom,
I had to put behind me all tempting dreams of ideal
achievements. Anson received all this very impa-
tiently. I could hardly tell from his abrupt protests
whether he thought that it was not true or that it
did not signify. He was quite sure it was irrele-
vant. Had I no positive, definite tastes or wishes?
A man must have some life and purpose of his
226 ECLIPSE,
own ; let me say what I wanted to be at, and he
would know how to advise, sympathize, or dis-
suade. I said, " Don't think of it as my difficulty
only. I represent some thousands of living agents,
free to choose for themselves what it is best for
them to do ; special, accidental determination is
wanting, and surely that is no loss, seeing how
often accidental ties hinder the individual from do-
ing what could be best for himself and others. Is
there nothing of which we can say, ' This is best in
the abstract, and to be preferred, therefore, if cir-
cumstances grant us the luxury of choice ' .^ "
The shadows of the willows across the stream
were growing paler as we spoke ; suddenly they
vanished, but not as indicating the height of the
eclipse ; a column of fleecy cloud had risen from
the east, and now began to cross the sun. In five
minutes the zenith was overcast, and a darkness
like that of early sunrise fell upon our path. As
we turned into the highroad and began to ascend
the hill, a sort of constrained silence fell upon us.
The sun had now lost its dignity as well as its
power ; the filmy mist showed as plainly as a piece
of colored glass the long crescent shape of divinity
under a cloud, the silver arc slid like the moon be-
tween the drifts of brown vapor that seemed to hang
half-way between the earth and the round masses
of soft gray cloud which melted into white as they
neared the sun. Body and mind shivered together.
ECLIPSE. 227
I hardly know how much of the pros and cons
that haunted my mind afterwards were explicitly
discussed between us then : the very fact that I had
looked foi-ward to this conversation as a starting-
point for more hopeful action made the chill of dis-
couragement more crushingly complete, and I felt
an insane readiness to take the innocent eclipse for
an omen. I know I argued that it was absurd, in
the face of the countless failures in each generation,
to assume at starting that one's own life had a right
to count upon success, and if not, was it anything
but a folly to start burdened with hopes that were
only so many empty packing-cases to hold the com-
ing load of disappointment? On the other hand, if
I put myself out of court altogether, and resolved to
work only for my fellow-citizens, according to the
cynic, " On a toujours assez de force pour sup-
porter les malheurs d'autrui," and the probable dis-
appointments met with here should be endurable ;
I admitted this would be an ungenerous calculation
if it constituted one's real, sole motive ; but Anson
called himself a utilitarian, and I thought it was a
valid argument that the greatest happiness of the
greatest number must fare best if the greatest num-
ber adopt it consciously as the goal of their several
efforts, instead of aiming only at their own happi-
ness, which we know beforehand so many of them
will miss.
But he would not have it so. Leaving my argu-
228 ECLIPSE.
ment on one side, he insisted that I took an un-
healthy and distorted view ; whether the end pur-
sued was one's own good or that of somebody else,
the only sane and natural state was one of keen
personal desire, an appetite for that particular good
too real to be argued out of existence by the
thought of its possible non-indulgence. I said that
too is a form of happiness, to have before one the
clear vision of a good attainable through one's own
action, whether for one's self or another ; but such
blessings are rare. What right has one to claim or
count upon such fortune for one's self.^ And I
remembered, though I did not say, how in all dab-
bling with small social reforms I had felt the neces-
sity of choking off one's inborn hopefulness and
forcing one's self into content so long as action
seemed to be going the right way, though the end
of it was still hopelessly out of sight. And now the
friend I loved and trusted, whose practical judg-
ment of life and character had always seemed riper
and wiser than mine, this friend takes the painful
conclusions of my best wisdom and intentions and
imputes them to me for sin or feebleness.
Meanwhile the sunlight was growing fainter, and
the clouds seemed to spread into a thin smooth
mist, which in its turn melted into space, and the
blue-gray sky was clear again. We leant upon the
top of a five-barred gate and looked back down
upon the valley of the Isis. The whole plain was lost
ECLIPSE. 229
in silvery mist, a gray cloud hung heavily over
Oxford, and the only spot of light in the view was
far off where a gleam of sunlight caught the passing
smoke of the up express, just as sometimes, when
the sky is almost wholly overcast at sea, one thin
streak of red or yellow light glitters through the
shadow midway to the horizon. I looked dreamily
from the spray of flowering blackthorn that bent
over the gate post to the dim wide prospect, and it
seemed as if the living world was a very long way
ofl'. I do not know how long we stood in silence ;
it was one of those moments that seem as if they
might last for ever without change, and then
Anson's voice was heard, even and unimpassioned,
as if still in the middle of a sentence : " The fact is,
you ought to marry ; it's exasperating to see a
fellow ^vith your sense wriggling like a contrary eel.
Fall in love with a nice girl, and either take to a
jDrofession or write a book. Go into society, make
friends, forget yourself and those nightmares about
fated disappointment. Do what w^ork you can ;
don't be always hanging back with some sickly
apology that perhaps somebody else would do it
better ; and, for heaven's sake, don't think there is
any saintly virtue in never doing anything you
like ! "
There is no describing the whirl of bewilderment
that fills a single moment, when one feels a thou-
sand things at once, and each several shock com-
230 ECLIPSE.
bines with the others to swamp one's consciousness
with a single comprehensive, overwhehning thrill
of startled pain. Had I said something quite dif-
ferent from what I meant, or was he answering
something quite different from what I had said?
I kept silence and looked up. Did I say that the
eclipse was annular.? Overhead was to be seen a
black ball with a silver line outside it, like a celes-
tial bull's eye. I laughed aloud. It seemed an
absurd mockery of human aspiration that Phoebus
Apollo should glower at us with one blind eye at
the moment when any hint or glimpse of light or
mercy would have seemed, indeed, an oracle from
heaven. Anson thought for a moment I was
laughing at his advice ; but when he, too, looked
up, he owned that the awe of impending darkness
was over. We gave one look round, shivered,
came back to the road, and in easy talk of college
matters strode homewards down the hill.
There are mistiikes one does not make twice ;
but just because I was not going to risk my pleasant
friendship on the rocks of quasi-theological debate,
I felt inwardly the more bound not to disregard the
chance of undiscerned truth lurking in what seemed
to me the unsympathetic and superficial Weltan-
schauimg thrust in my face by this unlosable
friend. My thoughts dwelt on every word he had
said, on every half-meaning I could imagine latent
in his unspoken thoughts. Instead of dwelling on
ECLIPSE. 231
the materials for self-justification, I turned advocate
on the other side ; it seemed so much better that I
fihould have been egotistically stupid than that he
should have failed in understanding kindness.
I say I have no divine right to a likable function
in life ; he says it is a disease of body or mind if
one does not like the function ^vhich it is objectively
best for one to discharge. But can there be a duty
in liking? Is it possible that one's chance of doing
a plain duty should hinge upon the luck v*^hich
makes the accessible duties pleasant ? And yet it is
true also, as he contends, that there is virtue in the
joyous fulness of objective life to feed the powers
bv which men do their best for the world. Week
after week, month after month came and went,
leavino^ me revolvino^ in the same vicious circle of
recurring moods, all colored by the same sense of
emptiness and discouragement. Though I refused
to complain of the need or abandon the attempt to
endure to the end, to my feeling it ivas endurance,
a prospect at which to set one's teeth and stiffen the
muscles in stern preparation ; and then I felt that
such a mood, indeed, could not invite the tender
sympathies of friendship. Is Anson himself nothing
to me, that I should din into his ears the complaint
that my life is all endurance, all hardship, that one
can no more than endure .^ Why cannot I escape
from the cramping sense of endurance and begin to
achieve '^.
232 ECLIPSE.
He does not understand that one should do any
kind of uncongenial work for the benefit of others
without the stimulus of sympathetic affection or
personal desire. He calls it insanity to act without
either love or liking, liking for the mere act or
good-will towards the object. I say, God help the
world if none can serve but those who love it ! —
and all the while I know that the intelligent accept-
ance of a rule is but a feeble motive in comparison
with the spur of personal affection. The intention
to do one's duty to one's neighbor is too wide ; one
must want to render concrete sei^vices to A and B.
Victor Hugo's epigram on Cimourdain will bear
extension : " On lui avait refuse une femme, il avait
epouse I'humanite. Cette flenitude eno7'me c'est
ati fond le videy
I go over without bitterness all the common-sense
reasons against my life (or yours) laying itself out
on an exactly ideal plan. I am incapable of the
half-mystical " trust that somehow good" will come
to save one's soul without ^vorks or grace of one's
own. Content is a subjective feeling, and may come
either after victory or defeat, but not while the issue
is uncertain, or, as is more often the case in peace=
ful daily life, when some of the possible issues are
still regarded as evil, without therefore being the
less likely to occur. My experience is all against
any "unearned increment" of virtuous power,
while Anson argues that the Methodistical doctrine
ECLIPSE. 233
of " leadings " rests upon a sound induction. It is
the inward imj^ulse to seize a given opportunity
which inspires action and gives to the result its
providential character. But the question is this :
every one has opportunities of acting somehow,
and may use these opportunities better or worse ;
but is it certain that every one can have a selfish
liking for the best actually in their reach? are
opportunities certain to offer of themselves for the
individual to do the best he can ? or may it not rest
with the judgment to inspire the initiative effort in
the silence of congenial impulses?
If one aims at doing what one conceives to be
right, is.it any use torturing one's self about what
one does or doesn't feel, like so many unconverted
Evangelicals? I don't care, and don't want to care,
for any of the goods of life ; by nature I cared for
very few, which I couldn't have, and after arguing
myself out of the desire for what I used to want (in
vain), I would rather not, even if I could, fall again
under the sway of self-regarding wishes, running
the same chances of distracting disappointment and
stupefying indulgence. I should wish to be content
to have no life of my own, to exist as an atom in
the social machine, working without hunger or
thirst, consuming nothing, and following without
will of its own the " leadings " of adjacent springs.
But if I lived forever, as, praised be the solar
system ! is not dangerous, I should have no selfish
234 ECLIPSE,
delight in the function, for my inmost nature recoils
from the invitation to be glad that other people care
for such lives as would be hateful or intolerable
cO me. My friend says (and w^ith some reluctance I
believe him to be right), that one cannot discharge
even the most mechanical function in the social
body unless one feels with the impulses that direct
the living atoms. And I do not feel with them,
even when I feel very heartily ^cr them. I cannot
feel for myself as they do ; I cannot wish so to feel,
and though I could give almost my hopes of death
to have an ideal towards which it was possible to
strive, the best possible to me is not an ideal, but a
calm, solitary stoicism, to which he gives much
harder names.
It is human fate to have to struggle after some-
thing better than one is ; but merely to wrangle
with one's self for not being already other, seems
a waste of force ; and yet I wrangle and for the first
time in my life doubt and dispute my own strongest
mental instincts, because I cannot rest content with-
out an ideal aim, safe from the blight of my friend's
contempt.
The fact is, though I love my fellow-creatures
dearly in the abstract, all concrete relations with
them are so complicated with depressing difficulty,
that I can hardly keep myself from feeling as if
I disliked the relations. I never come in contact
with people without wanting to act on them or
ECLIPSE. 235
their circumstances ; but perhaps they don't want
to be acted on, or they want to act on me, or want
X and J' to act with or on them in quite a different
direction. On the whole, I believe most of the
things that I feel inclined to do might as well be
done as let alone. I am sure I had better do some
of them than nothing ; but unless one is quite sure
that the very thing one wishes to do one's self wants
doing more than any other possible thing, one is
apt to wait for encouragement or sympathy before
one begins ; and then again there is always a likely
chance that tlie thing one is encouraged to do, if
one meets with any encouragement at all, is the
third best of the whole lot. And then one drifts
back upon the knowledge — none the less certainly
true because it is a sentence of death for such as I
— that no particular good thing will be done by any
one who has not a personal selfish desire prompting
him to do just that. I have wasted the strength of
my life in always trying to do some unprofitably
distasteful thing. All my days have been spent in
doing or trying to resolve to do what I disliked, and
Anson seemed to make himself the mouthpiece of
the world's unkindness in giving a verdict against
me on this very ground. Not that I appeal against
its justice. Where is the merit of a martyrdom
that serves no creed.? With chances to favor, I
might have done something — it is useless to
wonder how much or little — but that asrain was
236 ECLIPSE.
what I bated to admit, that one's fate was in the
hands of chance.
But I hated, too, the misplaced sympath}' which
congratulates you pleasantly on the pleasantness of
an irksome task, and is ready to encourage your
despair by auguries of undesired rewards and un-
attainable results. There is nothing more madden-
ingly discouraging than the suggestion of a friend,
who, ignoring the impalpable sources of one's dis-
tress, points to imaginary prizes in the coming
years : an author's fame, a happy marriage, or the
like. If friendship's self can only hope to make
the present bearable by the prospect of a future
that will never be, that is a confession that the
present is unbearable, not a help in bearing it. As
a mere boy, I had hailed as deliverance the doctrine
that it is wise and right to renounce, not to set
one's heart on pleasure ; it is a small thing as well
as unattainable, — strength and virtue lie in being:
able to do without it. And so I lived, asking
nothing, and not complaining when I got it. But
this philosophy does not teach one what to do ; and
while I told myself and believed it was right to be
able to do w^ithout pleasure, I did not think and feel
it to be right or possible to do without action. And
I sought the inspiration of friendship to tell me how-
to act. My friend answered, or so his words
sounded to my soul's ears, " Act as you like, and
like what other people do ; " or perhaps it was,
ECLIPSE. 237
" Like what other people do, and then you will act
with them of j^our own accord ; " anyway, trans-
lated into doctrine, the conclusion seemed to be
that virtuous action was the natural fruit of un-
bought involuntary happiness, and that no good
thing came from any other root. And I understood
how people have called Calvinism, a damnable
creed ; for by that, as by this, we are shown men
and women, as it were alive, but a doom not of
their own making holds them back from living
rightly. That this was horrible gave no assurance
that it should not be true, but if true it was a
damnable, a damning truth. It seemed to be a
light thing to give up happiness, but I did not
care to give up my conscience too. Had onl}^ the
fortunate a right to be good? was I to renounce
the first fruits of my life's stern teaching and learn
to wait upon Providence for luck that should in-
spire me with virtuous power.?
I knew Anson did not argue thus, but where else
was his reasoning to lead } I have two exorbitant
appetites — to rule the wide world beneficently, and
to have all my friends' best love. I feel the mon-
strousness of these pretensions, but if I choose to
accept all or nothing, who has a right to blame my
choice? We have each a double ideal. There is
the self that one would have liked to be, and the
self that one feels one might and ought to become.
I would have triumphed if I could in and over the
238 ECLIPSE.
world by nature ; if that is denied me, shall I not
triumph by grace over my own regret?
In point of orthodoxy there was little to choose
between us; Anson swore by "Evolution," and I
by a philosophy of my own, as yet imperfectly
evolved ; but the difference between us seems almost
theological in character ; so might a Calvinist and
a Utilitarian Pelagian debate as to the duties of the
unconverted. But Anson, when I hinted at the
parallel, only accepted half of it.
" Exactly ; there's an ascetic twist, as if one of
your great-grandfathers had been a Trappist monk.
What other good is there on earth but natural
earthly happiness, and what have positive philoso-
phers like you and me to do w4th transcendental vis-
ions of some hyper-sensible state of ' blessedness,'
which, if you analyze it, must turn out a pure sur-
vival from states of thought which owed all their
meaning to theological preconceptions that you ac-
cept as little as I do ! "
Well, I had no special preference for the word
"blessedness," but I thought Anson and his favorite
philosopher rather missed sight of the motives which
have led to the revival of its use by some fairly
" positive " moralizers. Let us take some moment
of extreme personal happiness. A long-sought-for
discovery has been made, merit long denied has met
with public recognition, a rival has been ignomini-
ously defeated, a risky speculation has turned out
ECLIPSE. 239
fortunately, a beloved bride has been won. Now in
all these cases the feeling of personal delight may
be equally intense, but a moralist, while admitting
all alike to be happy after their own fashion, would
only affirm those to be possessed of " true blessed-
ness " whose happiness was compatible with the true
good and gladness of others. Supposing the bride's
consent has been extorted by domestic coercion,
supposing the speculation to have succeeded by the
ruin of honest traders, supposing the rival to have
felt no evil passions, and to be pained and injured
by his defeat, suppose the acknowledged merit to be
spurious, and the imagined discovery an hallucina-
tion, the happiness remains the same at the moment,
and in the worst cases there is least danger of its
being cut short. But this is not blessedness. You
may call it good luck if you think it such, but if
there is any highest wisdom at all, any immaterial
prize of righteousness, it must be something inde-
pendent of good and evil chances, something that
a man may conquer for himself out of the deepest
abysses of calamitv. If there is a supreme, iinper-
sonal divinity of right, if a man is in love -\n\\\\ this
divinity, and has vowed himself body and soul to
its service, he mav find in faithfulness to this his own
ideal vision a source of satisfaction potent to out-
weigh even an acute sense of personal suffering, so
that the righteous man may choose, and choose
happily, his own pain rather than the surrender of a
240 ECLIPSE.
wider good. Even of the elements of what we call
personal happiness, many are external to ourselves,
confer on us no direct pleasure or advantage, and it
is only going a step further in the same direction to
admit that under some circumstances the conscious-
ness may prove to be most satisfactorily occupied
with experiences that are in no sense self-regarding.
It is a commonplace almost beyond dispute that
men may sometimes be called upon to renounce
their happiness if they would keep their hold on
the eternal good ; but it seems to me that there is
yet a further step, and none but religious ascetics
have dared to take it. I say we are called upon to
recognize that the answer of a good conscience, the
" blessedness " or content born of complete devotion
to the highest Best, may prove to be as little in our
reach as the ordinary good luck of earthly fortune.
Any life would be worth living that could be spent
in the service of the ideal best ; but what if for some
of us, for me myself, no ideal was possible or con-
ceivable ?
By the time I had got the problem clearly stated
on this wise, I ceased to wonder that Anson had
failed so much as to understand its terms, let alone
the formula for its solution. And yet if there is no
such fate, what did the old monk mean ? " Magnum
est et valde magnum, tam humano quam divine
posse carere solatio, et pro amore Dei libenter ex-
ilium cordis velle sustinere, et in nullo se ipsum
ECLIPSE. 241
quaerere, nee ad proprium meritum respicere."
To live for the love of good, cut off from all living,
loving goodness, alike of gods or men, if there w^ere
no such damnation as this, why did the Apostle of
the Gentiles challenge the doom as what he would
risk to save his brethren's souls ! But this is still to
the Jews a stumbling-block, to the Greeks foolishness.
Anson was to have been married in May, and we
did not meet again till the following autumn. The
wedding had been put off on account of illness in
the bride's family, and he had been spending all his
spare time with them, so pretexts had not been
wanting to help the postponement of an encounter
that I dreaded. We met at last in an out-of-the-
way court off the Strand, at a workingmen's meet-
ing called to discuss an inconvenient technical con-
sequence of some recent attempt at law reform. I
was presiding, and had just finished a short intro-
ductory statement when Anson came in.
I asked him if he, as one " learned in the law,"
would speak next.
He said, " Presently ; " and when the next orator
was well started on an eloquent, unaspirated ha-
rangue, he whispered to me his congratulations on
the part I was taking in this affair, and in one or
others of the same inconspicuous sort ; and added
what was meant for an apology, " Afraid I was
awfully uncivil to you in the spring, but it made me
savage to see a fellow like you wasting his time
242 ECLIPSE,
and spirits over cobwebs. More glad than anything
to see 3'Ou're all right now."
I laughed, and asked if it was a psychological
axiom that a " chairman" never suffered from reli-
gious difficulties, and he took the query to be a jest.
I did not think it necessary to explain that when I
was first asked to preside at this meeting, I refused
and suggested the name of a rising M.P., and that
it was only at the eleventh hour, when the latter
telegraphed an excuse, that I consented to take his
place, when I had literally not five minutes to spare
in which to invent a speech. According to Anson's
ideas, nothing could well be less sane or more per-
verse than to decline the opportunity of making a
good speech and then submit to the necessity of
making a bad one. However, the very complete-
ness of the malentendu encouraged me to renew
our interrupted intercourse. I was safe against in-
conveniently keen discernment.
He offered to bet the fees of his last case (a big
one that was sure to go to the House of Lords) that
before another seven years were out, I should be as
well pleased with myself, the world, and the one
woman in it, as he was now.
It is impossible to dislike a man at the moment
when he is giving you the strongest expression he
can of his good-will ; the feeling of horror, even
disgust, which seized me irresistibly, as I listened to
him, was altogether impersonal. I thought then
ECLIPSE. 243
that my rage was righteous. I felt as if a brutal
suggestion had been made to me, and I justified the
exaggerated resentment by taking it as an accusa-
tion, as if I for one should care no more for the
common lot of men if only my own hearth were
warm. But the resentment was too venomous to be
wholly just, and I have thought since that I might
have been less angry if I had not felt the augury to
be ill-judged. He did not in his heart accuse me of
the kind of selfishness I could repudiate aloud ; he
only credited me w^ith some of the common qualities
of our kind in which I felt myself to be wanting. I
thought it was his duty as a friend to have under-
stood that little short of a miracle was needed to
secure me the private felicity he promised with so
light a heart. And because I could not resent this
misconception as bitterly as I felt it, I resented all
the more the cognate assumption that, if I were
thus consoled, the remaining wretches of the same
order would be too few to count.
I was helped to this discovery by another expe-
rience on which this is not the place to dwell. Suf-
fice it to say that complaints ^'ery like my own were
made to me by a comparative stranger just at this
time. I was careful to avoid the rock of offence
upon which I had stumbled so painfully, and I said
nothing to encourage visionary hopes ; but, as kind
luck would have it, I was able to bring my client
within reach of the needed chances for his own
244 ECLIPSE.
life's growth, and with this change in the environ-
ment his mood changed too for the brighter. I
had a pleasant letter from him, acknowledging the
change, and expressing a hope that he was not there-
fore going to forget the doomed many, in whose lot
no change for the better could be made. He added
that the unexpected help was doubly valuable to
him, both as a personal advantage and as an answer
to the troublesome problem whether help might
come from man to man in the time of need. I had
^just read and answered this letter, and was revolving
in my mind the bearing on the general problem of
the corresponding truth, that helj) also might 7tot
come from man to man in the time of need, when a
telegram was brought me.
It was February. Anson had been married the
beginning of December, and travelled straight south
to Naples ; he wrote to me from Amalfi, and then
from Rome ; all went merrily as marriage-bells.
There was a new tone of tenderness here and there
in his letters which reconciled me to the volleys of
jubilant rapture which he felt it due to friendship
to fire off every few weeks. The last letter w^arned
us to expect him home in March. I opened the
telegram without thought of harm. It was from
an Italian doctor at Perugia. Anson was dying of
fever and had bid him send for me. There were
thirteen minutes left in which to catch the night
mail ; the cabman drove furiously, and I just had
ECLIPSE. 245
time to throw myself into the guard's van without
a ticket, before the moving train had left the plat-
form. In fifty hours I was at Perugia. He still
breathed ; three hours before he had asked for me,
and they took me to *his room at once. His eyes
were open, but with a strange look. I tried to
speak his name cheerily ; slowly a feeble look of
recognition broke over the changed features. He
whispered, "Thanks," — a gasping space between
each Avord — ' ' Thanks — old boy — for coming."
Then his hand moved faintly, and with yet more
effort, as I bent over him to catch every breath —
" Take care of her." The next moment she was a
widow and I had lost my friend.
The sad slow homeward journey ended upon the
anniversary of that accursed eclipse. Need you
ask why, from that day to this, I have never asked
myself, nor willingly let another ask, any question
bearing upon the share of Fate and Right in ruling
the life and determining the duties of men? And
from that day to this I have had a superstitious
horror of the Evil Eye as I see it sometimes in
dreams, a black, sightless ball, with a narrow silver
rim, watching with blind, baleful stare the far-off
struggles of a human soul.
Postcript by the Master. — I asked Egerton to
write the above, one day when we had been talk-
ing of young men's intellectual difficulties. He
246 ECLIPSE.
referred to these difficulties of his, and I found so
much difficulty in understanding them that I asked
him, in pure curiosity, to write them out for me at
length, as his contribution to our volume of dis-
guised confessions. Either *! am stupid, or the
written statement is hard to follo^v ; and as I am
guilty of getting the riddle inserted here, perhaps
I ought to add what little I can in explanation. I
think the chief trait in Egerton's character was
something that I can only describe as a conscien-
tious wilfulness. He wanted to do right, but it
must be a right of his own choosing, and he never
felt as if he had done enouG^h oris^hial rigrht to be
worth having. It was true, and a thing that
troubled his friends, that his life did seem always
partly wasted, less productive than it should have
been considering his real ability, perseverance and
unselfishness. As one follows his argument, one
is vexed with what seems like a shifty perversity, a
determination to have always some unanswerable
reason for making himself miserable ; but now that
we have lost him, in looking at his life by the light
of this, in itself sufficiently undecipherable key, I
seemed to understand him better than while he
lived and we persisted in expecting from him the
performance that did not come. He asked for a
theoretical solution of difficulties that only admitted
of a practical solution, which he always just missed.
It is a fact, a simple fact of observation, needing no
ECLIPSE. 247
more explanation than young Martin's broken leg,
that the prosperous contented man died young, that
one uncomfortable youth was helped to a career by
a good-natiu'ed stranger, and that the unhelped
helper, who was uncomfortable too, did a score of
things middlingly well, but always just fell short of
excellence or supreme efficiency. He had a high
standard and knew he failed to reach it. He chose
to consider his modest, useful life a failure, and I
think his friends judge more kindly in saying he
failed than in saying, " What right had he to judge
himself by so high a standard?" I think his char-
acter had enough elements of greatness in it to jus-
tify him in resenting the friendly suggestion that he
was no worse than his neighbors, and should be
content to know it. For him it was a failure to be
no better than they.
His weakness — he himself was capable in later
years of seeing that it was a weakness — lay in
this : He was not by nature so much in sympathy
wath any one external tendency or so much in love
with any single outer aim as to feel his whole
nature satisfied by the effort to co-operate with the
one or attain the other. And as the world is wide
enough for all vigorous human passion to find or
make itself a field therein, this imperfect adaptation
of a too fastidious soul to its surroundings is and
stays a defect, albeit a defect that calls for more
pity than blame. It calls for pity the more because
248 ECLIPSE.
patient and jDltying wisdom may not prove power-
less to supply to the young groaners in eclipse
some foot or hand hold whence they may struggle
into possession of the missing aim or motive.
As to Egerton, '•' Reqiiiescat in pace^ He
preached the courage he did not feel, and left his
part of the world a shade the better for his passage
through it.
}^t ^l^botu nf Jial^.
Let not my love be called idolatry.
— Shakspeare
H
X.
E had been dead a year and three days.
Two years ago we were married. One
of the vows we spoke as married lovers said that
each day and hour of our life should add something
to the force and tenderness of our wedded love. I
asked him for the vow, saying love seemed to grow
less if it only stayed the same ; one feels less the
feeling one has got used to ; and he said, Yes, but
a growing love grew dearer when it had been
growing long. For that short year we kept our
vow unbroken, unforgotten, and then I was left
alone, alone, alone, with the ghostly memory of a
short year's moments to defy the grim presence of
interminable years of life to come.
I tied from every one at once. I was thankful I
had no child. Every face and voice were hateful to
me ; every word the}' spoke seemed to scream to
me, '• All love has left the world with him." They
spoke as if they had never loved, never loved even
him, nay, as if they neither knew nor guessed what
love might be. If they had known, surely they
would have left me to mourn in peace. I fled ; I
251
252 THE SHA DOW OF DBA TH.
sought a prison where none could follow. Money
will buy even that, and in this convent by the sea
the nuns do not think it strange that one should
kneel all day before an unseen presence, and weep
and still kneel weeping.
After the first long months my tears fell more for
him ; waking in the night, waking at dawn, I
thought what it must be for him to wake and find
himself alone. For me it had always been enough
to know that he was happy, either with me or
apart ; but to him no happiness was possible
unshared. The sun is shining to-day ; if it were
not for the peasants' vineyards I could wish the
storms were back again. I hate the light he does
not see. My heart is sore for my dead love's sore
desolation. They talk of the Jour des mor^s and
a life beyond the grave ; I think I could bear my
own life if I thought Charlie were too dead to miss
me ; but I feel as if love could not die, as if, what-
ever else was dead, the aching pain at his heart must
last as long as my heart aches with lonely love.
The convent stands on a promontory ; the church
and bell-tower are a landmark to the sailors ; the
convent garden has a level terrace walk leading to
the churchyard, and there are hours in the day,
when the nuns and school-girls are at their duties,
that I have the garden to myself. I pace up and
down, gazing blankly into the formless void. The
world is empty when one has nothing left to lose.
THE SHADOW OF DEATH. 253
One can always be alone, too, by kneeling in the
little church. The visitor of the convent is a high
ecclesiastic. I had met him in the world, and I
told him I would live for months or years at the
convent if he would see that no one ever spoke to
n:ie of my creed or theirs, or the grief that sent me
to this shelter. He has kept faith, and I endure
the village priest's kind benedicite.
Can it be that I was a faithless or unhappy wife .^
I try in vain to conjure up the image of my owni
lost bliss. Surely I loved him and was blessed in
his dear love, and yet I cannot feel as if I had a
loss of my own to weep for. It is Charlie's life,
strong, bright and joyous, as we traced its course
in thought ; that is what I have lost, the loss for
which my tears fall still. I was four-and-twenty
when we met, and had never thought of love or
marriage. I heard people say it was not good to
live alone, but I was not alone in the large ever-
widening circle of a merry marrying family. I had
never thought of wishing for the happiness of love
in marriage for myself; it seemed there were so
many wanting it, I had no right to claim such a
lot before so many others with a better claim to it
than I. Indeed, w^ien Charlie came to see us, I
never thought it was for me he came, and I was
slow to understand or be persuaded that he claimed
me with a love that had a right to the best answer
I could give.
254 THE SHADOW OF DEATH.
Surely I loved him ; why else did the world end
for me with his death? And yet my heart seems
cold, as if my very love were dead as well. Grief
seems to choke me, and yet I cannot grieve, because
it seems to me a little thing, among the million
sorrows of the poor, the anguish mixed with wrong
and shame, the cruel losses through which other
wrong is wrought, it seems a little thing by the side
of these that the joy of my one life is dead. It was
not to win love's joy that I let my life unite with
his ; one must answer to a call ; and now there is
silence everywhere, and in the dull heartlessness of
my grief, it seems to me that it is not his love I
mourn and miss ; it is the sweetness of the voice
calling on me for love. Who is it says that —
Youth is blest
Because it has a life to fill with love.''
I am not old even now, and shall I fill my life with
love of that lost blessedness.^ Though I asked for
nothing, that sweet voice came to me : shall I have
learnt from it only to ask angrily in vain? The
memory is mine ; it is not a small thing, that and
my constant soul bound together like lovers in a
first embrace, — Oh, the memory of his first
kiss ! — that memory and I will live unflinchingly
through all the years, and we shall die undivided
when I go to rest with him.
THE SHADOW OF DEATH. 255
An old lay sister died this week, and has been
buried to-day. It was Alay when I wrote last, and
October finds me still here, alone w^th the sad
memories that are turning to reproach. Those un-
explained last words of his : '•'•I leave it all to you,"
— they thought he meant the land — as if he or I
could have thought of that at the last hour of part-
ing, I have thought again and again of the trust
those words conveyed, and no meaning ever joined
to them till now\ I thought perhaps he meant
rest was for him, he left the pain and grief to me ;
but the slow months bring understanding, and I
think he meant that the life w^e thought was his
was left to me, and to me he left the doing, the
causing to be done, all we had planned together
that he should do to justify his life. In a book of
his I found this passage marked w^ith an index
finger : —
'•You may learn to know yourself through love, as
you do after years of life, whether you are fit to lift
them that are about you, or whether you are but a
cheat, a load on the backs of your fellows. The im-
pure perishes, the ineflicient languishes, the -moderate
comes to its autumn of decay; these are of the kinds
that aim at satisfaction, to die of it soon or late. The
love that survives has strangled craving; it lives be-
cause it lives, to nourish and succor like the heavens.
But to strangle craving is indeed to go through a death
before you reach your immortality."
256 THE SHADOW OF DEATH.
My love is not dead ; it has turned into a hungry
craving, I thought I loved him purely, and I grieve
that he no longer needs my love. All the springs
of human feeling dried up in me when he died.
For longer than our married life, half as long again
as my whole life's share of happiness, I have lived
in selfish, barren solitude. At first I w^ondered,
could this last forever? As the days and months
passed, it seemed there was no force to end it. I
had no force to question, was it right.? What was
the use of asking, though it were wrong, was any-
thing else so much as possible.?
Is anything else possible? I dwell apart from
the little cares and brawls of the convent life, and
standing thus apart, the stillness and the peace, the
remoteness from the eager life of towns, the near
presence of the church and graveyard — it seems so
short a step from the nun's cell to the bier on which
the old lay sister sleeps, while the psalms are chanted
round her — all this reminds me of an early longing
for something like a cloister, where a sad laity could
take vow^s not quite like those of Christendom. I
could not take these sisters' vows, even if I shared all
their faith. It is too easy ; it is seeking a coward's
ease to build walls and bar the windows against the
world's w^ickedness, and then, like raw troops grown
bold in garrison, rail at the enemy who challenges
us to conflict in the field. I want a cloister whose
walls are faithfulness and its bars love, a fortress
THE SHADOW OF DEATH. 257
invisible and present everywhere, a refuge from the
world's temptations, and one's own soul's hungry
craving, the craving whereby the cunning world
tempts to angiy, covetous discontent.
The world has robbed me of my love ; can I take
a vow of loving service to the cruel world ? Can
one wish to return good for such an utter evil ? The
love that has " strangled craving," that is stronger
than death or any other distance, can live without
happiness ; but can love prosper a whole lifetime
widowed of perfect joy? The perfect love gives
everything and receives everything, without thought
or efibrt, almost without consciousness of desire.
But how are the affections of the heart to remain
ever tender and responsive, so strong and ready as
to give their own tone and color to the whole of
life, if the self-abandonment of answered love is
made impossible forever, if at every turn the feel-
ing must be checked that grow^s unchecked into an
exacting clamor, a cry after the answer that does
not come?
I suppose there is still too much self-seeking
self-assertion, too little disinterested love, while one
has the feeling of such check. In regard to him, I
never felt the room for any check or chill, not only
because I had his love : I felt, whether or no, that
he must have had mine, and that only to love is
blessedness enough, divinely more than enough.
If one loved others with as pure a tenderness, there
258 THE SHADOW OF DEATH.
would be no painful sense of self-repression or re-
pulse. I cried yesterday because a little black-eyed
baby in the convent school cried when I stooped to
kiss her ; but it was not to give the child pleasure
that I stooped ; it was to feel once more the near-
ness of some human love. I was not thinking of
the child, rather, already, before I knew it, the
question was framing itself in my thought : — One
cannot live without love ; can one live vs^ithout the
joy of love, which is not to be loved again, but that
the beloved one should be blessed in our love } My
beloved lives still, — he lives in my unchanging love,
but oh ! the impotance of mortal loving ! What
profit has he in the silent grave .^ I am desolate, and
the sad faithfulness avails him nothing. Would
God I too were dead ! Can one live, I was asking,
when love itself grows barren at the icy face of
death ?
And even now I answer, without haste and after
listening to every doubtful pause : — This, too, is
possible. Married love and the passionate friend-
ship which is as the marriage of twin souls, these
are the first open gates ; the way of salvation leads
plainly through them, and the flames that dart
across the portal and fasten consumingly upon the
selfish lusts of those who would pass through the
gates have not much terror for the blest elect who
enter hand in hand. But there is another gate,
narrow, obscure, to which each one draws near
THE SHADOW OF DEATH. 259
alone, and the path to it is through the valley of the
shadow of death. We tread barefoot and the stones
are sharp, we fall, the ground is a flame, the air is
a suffocating smoke, invisible demons ply theii"
scouro^es, the burden of lost g^ladness is a crushino-
weight. There is one strange pleasure in the agony,
— to feel sharp flames consuming what was left in
us of selfish lust ; and there is one pain passing all
the rest, — to feel the same flame fasten thirstily
upon our every wound, within, without, and con-
sume the very pain, as if that too was sin.
The path is long through the dark and winding
hollow ; who knows if we shall live to reach the
end, where is the gate of religious love, and few
there be that find it ? But that fierce trial can teach
as much as the sacramental mysteries of twice-
blessed love ; and it is lawful for each of those who
have followed the divine teaching to the end to feel
that no other lesson could have been so full of deep
instruction for themselves. God forbid I should
blaspheme the sacredness of the love that \vas once
his life, because the gladness of it is now turned to
a spreading desolation. Only to me this death is
not the end of life, rather the beginning of a life-
long worship, and this too is a ^vay of salvation.
Desire is past ; what could he desire at my hands ?
He has passed from me, out into the unseen, unfelt
world, upon whose bidding I Avould wait in meek
obedience. It is as if I and my God were alone in
26o THE SHADOW OF DEATH.
the infinite space ; the void world is not too wide
for a devout enclosure, and it is there my vows are
to be paid.
It is not laid upon all as a duty, but it is lawful to
a few when the necessity befalls to dwell in the
world, in the bright, wholesome, sunlit Avorld — in
it but yet not of it. When the world's best has van-
ished from the body's sight, it is lawful, nay, it is
good, a high and blessed privilege, to cleave for
evermore to the lost divine invisible love, to wor-
ship and adore the dear unseen, rather than quench
the spirit of faithful renunciation and seek scraps of
feeble consolation among the so-called goods of
earthly life. Good indeed and in truth for those
who are born to find their own good there ; but to
the spouse of a heavenl}^ love, false and mocking
shadows, a feeble mimicry of the true inalienable
spiritual inheritance that remains for ever to solace
those who are faithful in bereavement.
There are two sisters in this convent and there is
one priest in the adjoining town whose faces are like
a sermon on the poetry and the meaning of the reli-
gious life. The refined, exalted expression of spiri-
tual "detachment" from the momentary interests
of life is a permanent but not an exclusive charac-
teristic of the countenance. Interest, concern, sym-
pathetic alarm or pleasure, kindness, deference,
amusement sometimes, and sometimes even indig-
THE SUA D O W OF DBA TH. 26 1
nation, appear on the sweet face in their due turn,
without prejudice to the lasting dominant air of
absorption in the unseen world, as if the true " re-
ligious " had lived face to face with the embodied
eternal realities of human life, as if the personal
life had been lived out alone with the unchanging
divine and spiritual essences ; and then, for love of
the divine in God and man, they consent to live
again, without personal life of their own, among
the mixed and impure lives of the myriads in whose
personal life the divine element is so faint, so feeble,
so fragmentary, so inseparably entangled with base
and earthly matter, that fe^v among them can rec-
ognize its divinity unaided, and fewer still be
brought to apprehend the glory of a life that should
be all divine.
The Catholic Church was not far from the truth
in its recognition of the two vocations outside the
doom of sinful failure. There is the secular ideal,
reached or sought by men like my own lost Charlie ;
natural, j^i'osperous human lives, spent in doing
willingly naturally good, self-chosen work, in the
beneficent, enjoyable exercise of power, in the de-
lig^htful indulsrence of beneficent desires. The
earthly paradise is when such souls as these live in
unbroken unity together. But earth is not Paradise,
and some who have seen the gates of heaven open
have seen them open only to close behind all that
made their heaven on earth. And for others they
262 THE SHADOW OF DEATH
have not opened at all ; the natural life is dull and
mean and mischievous. And alone, near and yet
apart from both the others, the religious life follows
its calm, strong-, unvarying course — a life that
spends itself in joyful worship of tlie living good,
in sad, devout commemoration of the good that has
been living, that lives now only in its fruitful memo-
ries, and the sad devotion bom of loss and worship,
and in faitliful, patient sti'ife against the tyranny of
evil nature, in loyal championship of the feeble
tribes, the scattered units who cling feebly through
oppression to a worthier birthright. Thus rich,
thus varied, thus fed by nature, outlined and sus-
tained by the chronic necessities of human life and
labor, the religious life follows its solitary course, —
alone, yet not alone, engaged at every turn in the
countless interests of unnumbered daily lives, but
with tlie deepest inner consciousness of tlie soul
consciously possessed by something else than the
personal care for these succeeding acts of faith
or hope or charity ; possessed, namely, by the
overmastering, undying passion of adoring love for
the spiritual source and centre, the conceived imper-
sonation of the divinely wise and tender power in
whose strength alone the worshipper goes forth to
conquer and to die, — to die the living death of
those who live by faith, the life of the immortals
which is death to man, instead of by sight, by the
very beatific vision of an incarnate good, which
THE SHADOW OF DEATH. 263
overshadows blessed life by the impending shadow
of a personal death.
I am driven to say all this more plainly to m3'self
than I had wished by the insistence of kind friends
— kinder than wise I think them, and one is apt to
feel unwise kindness as a cruelty. They scold me,
with gentle sympathy, it is true, for giving up the
world, my friends, and duties in it, to live alone
here with an idle memory. Do they think I would
have done this // / could have done otherwise?
Now, it is not because of their kind moralities, nor
because I see new light upon the path of duty, that
I feel the hour for some change is at hand. There is
a duty owing to the deepest feelings of the heart. If
we feel it possible to obey their silent urging, im-
possible not to wait and follow in submission, who
shall dare to say that we and the iiTesistible impulse
are wrong and blameful ? The passion that possesses
us 'tvholiy, body, soul and spirit, mind, will and
conscience, all at once has a right to male us as it
does and must, and to resist the promptings of such
passion at the bidding of remembered platitudes is
like sinning against the Holy Ghost within us ; it
is a lie against our own soul's truth, of which the
fruit is that worst damnation, the silencing of the
soul's native voice, banning the sinner to drift
rudderless through the remaining days.
Mj friends say, is it not an indulgence of the
264 THE SHADOW OF DEATH.
selfishness of grief that holds me here alone? They
say, though he is gone, are there none left that
need your love ? I listened silently ; I did not
choose to answer sternly : " The heart knoweth its
own bitterness," and w^ho is such a stranger as a
mere good friend to the mystery of its joy and grief?
Have I said — I hardly care to say, because it would
have hurt my Charlie's soul to hear — that in losing
him my most utter loss was the losing one who
could not live without my love? For his sake I
could have surrendered all the rest ; but that one
worst loss had to be borne. I am alone ; the others
can do without me : — for you see they have. One
cannot even wish to cease to feel this desolation as a
pain. One loves all the same, and chooses, since it
must be so, to have tliat pain to bear ; it takes all
one's strength to bear it w^ithout bitterness. And
then kind friends break in with warning voice :
" You are wasting your love upon a memory ; he
needs it not ; do you go and love those who need."
O Charlie I they are cruel ! Charlie ! if any
knowledge could haunt you now, would you not
know it is my hardest grief that the love I bear to
you is fruitless for your good? But, my love, my
love ! is the fault of that in me ? Should I not have
sei-\^ed you with eager faithfulness and glad devotion
through a life of love if fate had left you in my
arms ? Who dares to reproach the stricken victims
of the pitiless deatli ? Let the rest find their, happi-
THE SHADOW OF DEATH. 265
ness where they may ; what have I done that they
should call on me to go out into the highways and
hedges and beg amongst the starving beggars for a
pauper mate, because the king has no profit from
his subjects' love ? Let those who must or may love
once, or twice, or thrice, let their happiness be born
again when it is dead, but earth held only one joy
for me, and that is dead, and my love still worships
at its tomb. Though my love himself came back
to chide me, I could say no other than that I do well
to love and worship mournfully.
There is but one love to which, without faithless-
ness, the widowed soul may be abandoned with the
boundless self-abandonment of the one sole, infinite,
unrenewable passion — the love of the infinite, im-
personal, spiritual divinity, the passionless calm of
infinite truth, the ideal of perfect wisdom, strength
and mercy, which we see as in a glass darkly, when
a noble human soul casts its shadow on the troubled
stream of life. It may be that without this fleeting
vision of the God in man I had been left godless in
the lonely world. But to have seen once is to love
for ever, and all the pure goodness that I loved in
him is with me now as a God immortal, adorable,
and present everywhere. He lives in God, God
lives in him ; my life is hid in the worship and the
love of God in him.
He had plans of what we and our children should
266 THE SHADOW OF DEATH.
do. He said it took two generations working to^
gether to do the best that might be. But I am
widowed, and no child of his is with me. He said,
playing reproachfully with my lack of high ambi-
tion, that I was born to be the mother of great sons,
'' or," he added, "great daughters, which will be
more original." And yet no child of his is with
me. It was always my delight to believe his jesting
words ; he laughed in kindness, and his kindness
fulfilled many prophecies. Can the dead work
miracles, and the barren widow be a joyful mother
of children? Charlie ! Love is cruel as the grave,
and instead of peaceful sorrow you bid me seek the
trembling pain, the heart-sick, helpless longing of
the mother who has the power to bring forth —
who is there that cannot bring forth something f^-^
but has so little strength to bequeath along with the
doubtful boon of life, that she sees, with the second
sight of love, her feeble offspring struggling vainly
with the world it cannot mend or master because of
its feebleness, or rather hers who gave it no better
strength. Is it not so with mothers? The child
and the anxious pain and grief are theirs ; how little
of the triumph — if it came — would they dare to
call their own? Only the mother's pang, without
which this place would have been left for another to
fill. Less well? Then we have not lived in vain.
I cannot do your will, my own, but as I go
through the wilderness, the pier.cing voice of an-
THE SHADOW OF DEATH. 267
guish crying aloud, and calling in the name of our
love, " Let his good will be done," here, and here,
thus and now, — this voice cr}'ing in the wilderness
will touch some ears, it may be, and what I cannot
do for you, my love, myself, may yet be done at the
long last by many who will scarcely know why or
■whence the call has come to them. My life is ended,
yet 1 am not dead. I am a voice crying in the wil-
-derness, calling to the living from the sanctuary of
the dead, " My children, my children ! do the will
of the blessed who are gone, and a double blessing
will be upon your love and on your lives."
Still the months went by. I knew that light and
guidance would come, were coming, to me ; it was
mine to wait. There was one sweet-faced girl from
the convent school who wished to take the v«il, and
she had a friend who, half for company, thought
that she too had a vocation. The latter had rich
parents, and a hopeful marriage ready aiTanged for
the completion of her eighteenth year. I had come
to know these girls well, and they told me of their
innocent young dreams and longings. I was not in
haste to leave the convent, for no one else in reach
could or was likely to tell these children all that I
could. I spoke freely of the difficulty of the relig-
ious life, translating all that makes its rightful charm
into the orthodox language of the cloister. I think
they understood. Both grew to feel a girlish fond-
268 THE SHAD OW OF DBA TH.
ness for the English stranger, and I think it was
not without my help, that one consented to do her
parents' bidding and seek her mission in the world,
while the other with open eyes chose the strenuous
peace of cloistral vows.
I waited for her profession. The service is sad to
those who think that the young life might be better
spent, but it is a pretty and a touching thing to see
a young soul dare to vow eternal faith to the divine
ideal ; and I, who hold as strongly a very different
creed from theirs, chose nevertheless to let that ser-
vice stand as the symbol for one more profession
than the sisters guessed. I knelt unseen in an outer
chapel, and one by one my vows went up with hers.
When all was over a solemn stillness seemed to
fill the air. For the last time I paced the terrace
walk alone that evening ; a row of cypress trees
edged either side, like black spires shooting into the
blue overhead, and between these grim sentinels
pink roses flowered against the foliage of newly bud-
ding lemon trees. The air was still, and the sun
had already sunk behind the mountain shoulder.
There were no clouds overhead, and the line of sea
and sky was clear, but above the sea a low line of
curling cloud, like the level smoke from a giant
steamer, lay motionless along the horizon, and the
setting sun dyed it a deep, luminous, rose red. And
the coast line opposite grew to a deeper and deeper
rosy red ; cliffs and woods were bathed in crimson,
THE SHADOW OF DEATH. 269
the little fishing-boat had a crimson sail, and some-
thing strange, like a rosy veil, seemed cast over the
stillness of the blue sky and sea. The transparent
light was like the ruby glow^ of a summer sunlit
dewdrop. The glory and the peace were supreme ;
it was the crowning moment of the day's rich beauty.
I had watched the crimson deepening to the last ; it
had not yet begun to fade ; it seemed to me the hour
had come.
I rose and crossed the terrace without a back-
ward glance. I sought my convent room, and that
same night were written the letters pledging me to
return. The next day's dawn found half my lug-
gage packed for England, and in three days more
the convent grating was a memory, the wide en-
closure of the world a present truth of sense. And
the deep crimson glow of that sunset scene lives on
for ever in my thought undimmed, like the un-
dimmed memory of deathless love.
ni f$i Tirb$0.
The day is short and the work is great. It is not incumbent upon thee
to complete the work, but thou must not therefore cease from it.
— Talmud.
XL
I SAY, Phllo, how is it that most people's lives
somehow don't seem to come to much ? "
The question began with a rush and ended rather
hesitatingly, as if the problem, which had been
occupying the speaker's mind for at least ten min-
utes, did not appear quite as large, when reduced to
^vords, as he had expected. There was a deprecat-
ing fall in the boy's voice which disarmed severity ;
besides, he is the son of one of my best and oldest
friends, and I answer to the name of " Philo " in
token that I have accepted the role of guide and
philosopher which he has been pleased to assign
me ; — partly, I suspect, with a view to combining
the requisite modicum of respect with an epithet of
handy brevity and a comfortably familiar sound.
It was Sunday ; we had been for a walk over
the downs, and were resting on the steep sloping
summit. Lying on one's back one looked up into
the deep blue of a cloudless May sky ; a faint hum
of insects broke the silence at intervals, or was
drowned by the note of a distant bird ; a light wind
neither cold nor hot, but soft like the touch of a
273
274 SAT EST VIX/SSE,
child's hand, blew through one's hair and played
with the blades of grass and tiny gold and violet
flowers of the short-cropped turf as the broad winds
play upon the waving cornfields, scattering lights
and shadows in a dreamy network. On one side
there was a glimpse of blue sea cut by the green
slope below us. We had thrown ourselves upon the
grass to rest, but there is a difference between sixteen
and sixty, and Johnny's mind having been more ac-
tive than mine, the result delivered itself as above.
We were staying at the house of a rather distin-
guished political personage, and the night before
several ex-celebrities had been brought together in
a kind of family reunion^ early friendships or cross
marriages supplying the link when there was no
actual relationship. The dinner had been one of
those social successes which are growing more and
more rare, so that I was curious to know why my
young friend's impressions should have been of the
vanitas vanitatum order. It appeared presently
that the disappointment did not begin with the
public conversation of the great men ; the dinner had
been delightful — " at least," he went on, '' it was
delightful to me ; but most of the men were thirty or
forty or fifty years older than I am, and I thought I
should like to go on talking like that for ten years
or so. But then one would have talked about
everything, and I shouldn't like to go on saying the
same thing ; and when Lord was talking to
SAT EST VIXISSE. 275
me this morninof he did sav the same thlnsfs that
IVIr. liad said the day before yesterday at
breakfast, and it wasn't for the sake of making talk
to me, because he stuck to it after I had begun
to ask questions about something else. And
]Mr. * * * was just the same ; they all seemed con-
tent to talk about things as if they had nothing to
do with making them happen ; and the things that
they do talk about doing, and care about a great
deal more than I could, all seem so small, so far
away from the things their best talk makes one
feel like caring about a great deal ; and what I mean
by its all coming to nothing is that they don't seem
to care now, and if I do, it's only — they all three as
good as said so — it's only because Tm a boy. Wlien
I'm as old as they are I shall care as little and have
done as little too ; for, after all, I couldn't help think-
ing that they had all given up caring because it was
no use ; they could never do all they wanted ; and
as they all started meaning to be great men, when
they found they couldn't do what they wished, they
turned round and tried to make other people wish
for ^vhat they could do, and so went on doing
middle-sized thino^s without carino: much." And
not yet out of breath, the boy proceeded to sub-
stantiate his indictment by some personal illustra-
tions, never very hard to find, of the discrepancy
between the young ambitions of divers men of the
time and their mature achievements.
376 SAT EST VIXISSB.
I intimated that sweeping criticism was an easy
and an idle task ; it was for the rising generation to
achieve more if it could. But this the boy declared
to be a subterfuge unworthy of myself: " For what
I like in you, Philo, is that you never snub a fellow
in that way, talking as if one could never do any
good now because it isn't a dozen years hence. Of
course you are a walking wet-blanket and all that
sort of thing, but then your cold water," he was
pleased to say, " takes the form of making one feel
everything worth doing so tremendously fine and
great that it is too difficult — one has no chance of
getting through with it ; and that's quite different
from the feeling that it is foolish to care at all
because one can't do anything big enough to be
worth caring for. And then if one says anything
like this to people who used to care and don't now,
they look wise and say, ' Wait a few years, and
then' — And then, I say, if I end by not caring
either, does that make it any better } Doesn't it
make things all the worse if one generation after
another begins the same way to end alike, begin-
ning with mistaken zeal to end in contented
failure ? "
There was nothing very novel in the boy's con-
fused account of his first impression of disenchant-
ment with the world's " distinguished names."
But it brought back to me some of those questions
which it is usually the last act of expiring youth to
SAT EST VIXISSE. 277
put on one side, which it is the triumph of suc-
cessful middle age to bury in oblivion, but which,
after all, it seems can only be kept out of sight for
less than half a lifetime. I had been much given
at one time to asking myself, Does it all come to
much? and though, for reasons of my own, I
dropped ^he question about the same time as most
men, I always retained a kind of sympathy for boys
and men who have the courage of their foolishness,
and refuse to ape the virtuous content to which their
young souls are strangers. Somehow a bachelor
always seems to be thought of as a youngish man
until he is unmistakably an old one, and to this
day I feel more sure that the young Irreconcilables
who make a confident of me may easily live to be
wiser than I am now, than that I am already so
very much wiser than they (and I needn't say they
humor the belief) .
There are some things that one gets to know by
the mere fact of living long enough, but very few
people are able to spend all their time in learning
and none in forgetting. An idle man who has sat
loose to practical affairs has a chance of acquiring
his worldly wisdom so superficially that its lessons
need not quite efface the naive first impressions of
earlier days ; and so perhaps I was born to mediate
between Johnny's frank severity and the self-satis-
fied wisdom of his elders.
There is surely something to be said on both sides.
27S ^AT EST VIX/SSB.
The young hardly allow for the intense difficulty
'—material and unromantic difficulty — of choosing
an admirable course, and pursuing it with sure feet.
The old are apt to see shallow scorn and ignorant
irreverence in blame which has its truer motive in
respect for ideals still unmissed. But, as I think
slightly of the senile wisdom that cannot be com-
municated to a younger understanding, I wished to
rehearse for Johnny's benefit a few of the reasons
why it is fair to judge men by their attempts as well
as by their achievements, and why, even in youth,
it is as well not to set the whole heart too fondly on
the attempt at achievements in which we may fail
without guilt of our own.
I said : " Is it reasonable to ask of life that it
should always be ' coming ' to something different
from the living moment that is? The moments
that interest us most in life and attach us to it
most do not hang together like the parts of a syl-
logism ; our living interest is in the elements, not
in the whole they form at last ; and perhaps that is
why those who have not yet lived through those
thrilling moments are least ready to accept the
moments as themselves the crown of life. But we
Will talk of this again upon the island."
Johnny had been a privileged visitor at the castle
since he was nine years old, and the next Sep-
tember, just after his birthday, I reminded the
Master that he was entitled to initiation as an " old
SAT EST VIXISSE. 2 79
friend" now, for I wanted to know whether the
" Vignettes" would leave the same kind of impres-
sion on his mind as the conversation of cabinet min-
isters. For two or three mornings he kept away
from us, reading them seriously alone ; then I met
him returning the volume to the tower, and as he
followed me silently to the observatory roof, I
asked in his own words, "Well, what does it all
come to ? "
He was still grave, silent for nearly two minutes,
and at last asked, " May I say just what I think?"
To do him justice, he seldom pauses for permis-
sion, and I nod encouragement, but he still hesi-
tates before beginning a slow reply: "Well, I
hardly know, you see, if it were all true, — but of
course, even if it isn't true, it might be — I think
that's just it. I've read all the reminiscences
straight through, and I feel at the end just as I did
that day on Beachy Head when you pulled me up
for saying most people's lives didn't seem to come
to much. What does it all come to? I under^
stand that there is a difference between talking
or thinking about things and living through them,
and that if one feels one is living the right life for
one's self, one needn't be able to make one's feeling
into something like the answer of a conundrum.
But — you won't mind my saying? — ^^I do think the
clever people who have lived through a real life
ought to be able to tell us, who have hardly begun,
28o SAT EST VIXISSE.
whether we shall think it's worth doing when it's
done, or whether that depends on how we do it ;
and if so, which is the way they would try, ' if,' as
they're so fond of saying, ' I had my time to come
over again.' You and I now," and here he looks
me ingenuously in the face, — "I feel as if you
ought to know just everything I want to be told.
I don't say you ought to be able to answer any or
every body, but, on your honor as a philosopher,
am I so stupid that you can't tell me what you feel
in phrases that one can understand in less than a
quarter of a century ? "
It was a fair challenge, and I promised the boy
that my long-delayed contribution to the castle
records should consist in no ambiguous passage of
romance, but in a few senilities on the ancient
theme, " Sat est vixissey
The question that all young people want to have
answered beforehand is, "What had I better do
with my life, and what am I likely to meet vs^ith in
it to enjoy and to endure ? " Perhaps good advice
would be less unwelcome than it often is if those
who gave it avowed at the outset that it is likely
enough to be unpleasant to take ; that the fullest
knowledge of what might be best to do in any crisis
goes little or no way towards making it naturally
easy or desirable to do that best. I, at all events,
will not tempt you to hear me by any hope or
promise that I am going to prophesy smooth things.
SAT EST VIXISSE. 281
At starting, I find it very difficult to innovate in
substance upon the corrmonplaces accepted by good
folks before me. I have often been amused at my-
self for having arrived, slowly and by devious routes,
at elaborately expressed conclusions, which, as soon
as they got finally stated, turned out to be a mere
paraphrase of the moral platitudes from which my
mind wished to emancipate itself at first. How-
ever, here is a safe rule to begin with. I do not
know in which form it is most likely to be acted on,
but you may have it in the farthest fetched. The
younger you begin to act on it the better ; it is never
too young.
In the moments, however short, when there is
nothing that you wish to do, and nothing that you
are obliged to do, do not wait and wish for wishes
to arise ; spend the interval in cultivating, by pre-
ference a talent, or, if you can lay your hand on
none, at all events without fail a faculty. The odds
are overwhelming that any acquisition will come
in useful some time, and in any case the power of
working without the stimulus of desire, the habit
of working whenever you have nothing better to do,
are themselves among the most valuable of acquisi-
tions. I do not say. that you should force your na-
ture into w^holly uncongenial efforts ; no good is
done against the grain, and there must be some
knots and knobs in all our scaffolding ; but we may
train the young growing wood as we please, and
282 SAT EST VIXISSE,
we cannot make up our minds too soon as to the
supreme desirability of growing strong and straight,
and as tall as we can without risking a feeble stoop.
But the advice sometimes asked for is of a sort
that in the nature of things cannot be given. Such
questioning as this : What is my nature, or what
shall I allow it to become? or again, My untried
nature being (as I guess) thus and tlius, what life will
it be best for me to aim at leading ? Such question-
ing involves the hidden answers to so many other
questions that simple folks are not much to blame for
bidding the curious ones bide their time in silence.
It is possible to think over the commonest rela-
tions of life and generalize about the safest way of
dealing with this or that ordinary complication, but
when you come to individual appeals, I must know
your circumstances and powers before knowing what
you can do ; and I must know the circumstances
oi your circumstances before knowing what hints
they proffer for your guidance in the way of hin-
drance or opportunity. It is easy to say, follow
your own innocent impulses, unless they come in
collision with your neighbor's ; the impulse may be
wanting or collision probable ; any way the counsel
is too vague to be of use. And yet you need not
blame your counsellor; ; the question itself is vague ;
perhaps (but do not dwell on this parenthesis) its
vagueness marks the want of strength in those char-
acters that cannot forbear to ask it*
SAT EST VrXISSE. 283
• Still, in dealing with external obstacles aS well
ae with subjective difficulties, one may repeat the
warning. Do not force your nature. In choosing
the occupation of your life, if you are content to
Work in a groove traced out beforehand, do not
despise yourself for such docility, and imagine that
if only you were cleverer you would invent new
ways of disagreeing with your neighbors. Accept
}^urgood fortune, for it is such, and remember that
if you have to waste none of your strength and pa-
tience in clearing a field of action for yourself, you
should have the more left for raising the standard
of efficiency in meeting the demands of indispens-
able routine.
On the other hand, however, supposing, after a
candid trial and the modest reflection that there is
nothing creditable in any kind of incapacity — sup-
posing after all that' you still honestly and truly
cannot make the best of yourself by acting upon
the lines prescribed, then, in almost any case, you
may and should assert your claim to strike another
path. There is so little of providential adaptation
between young people and their surroundings, that
it is always possible the former may be right even
in rejecting* opportunities of a distinctly favorable
kind ; and besides, the offered opportunities are not
by any means always favorable. Only remember
this: it is easier to live the life that is expected
from us, and you have no right to undertake a work^
284 SA T EST VIXISSE.
of needless difficulty, unless you are able and will'
ing to subdue the difficulties and justify your rejec-
tion of the lighter task.
It is possible that fate has been hard, and only
given you a choice between uncongenial oppor-
tunities and the encounter with obstacles beyond
your strength. Should this be so, try to see the
bearing of the facts so justly for yourself that you
may accept which ever fate needs must, instead of
having it thrust upon you in a worse form by force.
It belongs to the A B C of sanity not to rail at
luck. It is perfectly true that some people have just
so much strength as will enable them to succeed if
the chances are favorable, and to fail if luck goes
against them. If you are one of these, you have
my deepest sympathy, but you can only compel my
respect and admiration by rising above your fate —
by consenting — you are still free in this — either to
sacrifice your own imagined best, in order that your
part in the world may be the most effective in your
reach, or to renounce the prospect of personal suc-
cess for the sake of faithfulness to your inner con-
viction as to what success alone is supremely worth
having.
But a consistent run of luck for or against the
individual is rare. The majority may count upon
an average lot, though all begin with desires and
aspirations after something better. Supposing, as
a schoolboy or an undergraduate, you feel, let us
SAT EST VIXISSE. 285
say, like one of Bulwer Lytton's heroes, an interest-
ing, intelligent youth confronting an interesting,
perplexing, tantalizing world. Note, I beseech you,
the vagueness of your own feeling, the diffused
indefiniteness of your sense of power and longing.
At a very early age one can understand that the
world has no answer to such unconditioned appeals,
and that no one has a chance of living to accom-
plish great things who has not patience to live
long enough for his own powers to specialize and
develop.
I understand the youthful intolerance of le pro-
visoire : there is nothing more pitiably pathetic than
a middle age spent in waiting for the chances that
come of themselves to one in a thousand. But if
we consider the case dispassionately, that is not the
alternative. It is abnormal — not sane or natural —
to wait half a lifetime for a chance of beginning to
live; but it is natural, normal, and even necessary,
to begin life by gathering impressions and informa-
tion which can only attain their full significance
later, when turned into material to feed the powers
that have meanwhile been cultivated in blindfold
faith. I would urge no one to be content with a life
at once idle and empty, but I contend no one of us
has a right to reckon on the full contentment afforded
by an adequate share in the fruit of our own and
others' work until our own contribution has passed
the margin of average sufficiency, and left a balance
2^ SAT EST VJXISSB.
over by way of insurance against mischances. If
you are always unlucky, ask yourself through what
defect you fail to give the world a fair chance of
doing indifferently well by you.
Gne of the most damaging indecisions of youth is
to feel or say, ' ' I would give all my time and pains
-gladly and obstinately to this ^rt, that science, the
other branch of industry, if only I could be assured
that my work would reach eminence in the end ; if
not, I will prefer a less arduous road into obscurity.^*
As one looks upon the hundreds of young ambitions
near at hand, who can have the heart to say, " Prob-
ably none of you will attain any kind of eminence,
and in a little while very few of you will care." I
cannot outlive my pity for these doomed aspirations.
But there must be something wrong in our whole
way of looking at things if each generation is con-
demned to begin with illusions and end with indif-
ference or despair. Can we not procure acceptance
among old and young for the belief that tlie best
good is not just the pre-eminence of one small head
above the rest, but some amelioration of the gross
result, in the attainment of which no single particle
of obscure labor can be dispensed with ? We may
not have the choice of eminence, but obscurity is no
bar against the charge of treason. I grant, foolish
youth, you cannot lead in the vanguard of the grand
ai'my of progress ; but know this likewise, so precious
is the safety of the host, so great the prize of victory,
SAT EST VIXISSE. 287
so calamitous the annihilation of defeat, that even
you, loiterer, shall not escape the gibbet if but so
much as one lean and feeble baggage mule goes
lame in your charge for want of grooming.
See, my children, you are but a feeble folk if we
take you oije by one, but the spirit of the ages has
fed your dreams, and the ambition that throbs within
you is for a greater result than the great man — whom
you are not — could himself effect without you. This
is your inheritance, to understand how the feeble
millions may join together, how the single efforts
will gather into groups, and how, as first the units,
then the groups learn to cease from evil, to cease
from laying stumbling-blocks in each other's paths,
at length there will arise a social fabric of which
the glory. and the good shall transcend the fairest
imaginations of a solitary genius as far as the loyal
service of enlightened millions will outw^elgh in
efficacy your boyish efforts at creative independence.
This, and not eminence, shall be your reward at
last, to see more and more clearly how each step
towards the great result was won by the co-opera-
tion of countless lives, disciplined each in action
and forbearance, and all alike gloriously indispens-
able to the final triumph of the race. The verdict,
Sat est vixisse^ comes from those who have shared
in such life as this.
And it does not foUov^ that all who have ceased
288 SAT EST VIXISSE.
to talk of their ideal have ceased to care for it. We
leave off talking w^hen w^e find that it is as hard to
match our thought w^ith w^ords as our ready words
with action. The oracle in " Wilhelm Meister"
says truly, " To think is easy, to act difficult, to
act according to our thought troublesome." One of
the best fruits of age is an appreciation of the slender
shades of difference which mark off our doings from
our intentions ; we have a scruple in saying what
we intended when we know how much our act has
fallen short ; and yet it may be that both act and
will are better, more purely good, than in the
bolder days when we boasted of aiming at nothing
short of perfectness.
But does the boy ask that our lives shall " come
to something " in his eyes or our own ? Is the test
objective worth or subjective satisfaction, and shall
he or I be the judge of what is " enough" of either?
or is he still exercised by the same problem as
Patriarchs and Psalmists before him, with the added
discrepancy between recompense and merits, that
the largest merits no longer carry with them at least
the cheap salve of self-complacency ? Does he want
to know whether it is enough to live righteously
without flourishing like a green bay tree in conse-
quence, or has he a formed opinion that it isn't, and
SAT EST VIXISSE. 289
that therefore the righteous must either flourish or
let him know the reason why ? Does he . . .
What he actually does at this point is to interrupt
my disconnected jottings and summon me to join
the Granny and Hester at tea in the upper chamber
of the tower. It is one of the unwritten laws of the
island that the visitors do not break up into smaller
knots than four for excursions, luncheons, afternoon
tea, &c., unless sweethearts or invalids receive a
special dispensation, and I obeyed willingly enough,
not observing that Johnny had meanwhile pbssessed
himself of the loose sheets on which I had been
writing. He produced them after tea, saying, "In
the multitude of counsellors there is wisdom," and
insisted on reading my platitudes to the ladies as the
day grew pale.
When he came to the last paragraph he said, " Of
course, this isn't finished, but if dear old Philo is
left to himself, he will wander ofl" into moral reflec-
tions that may be worthy of the seven sages, but
that don't tell me exactly what I want to know."
I asked, " What is it that you want to know? "
" That is exactly what I want you to tell me,'*
he obserA'ed, and Hester smiled, as if the remark
was more than usually to the point. She is five
and twenty, rather handsome, rather clever and
rather sarcastic, one of the girls usually spoken of
290 SAT EST VIXISSE.
by lady friends with some " wonder that she doesn't
marry." She says that she will do so when any
one as nice as Mrs. Charles A (otherwise
known as the Granny) asks her. This lady is
twelve or fifteen years older than Hester ; she was
left a widow young, and undertook the charge of
an elder brother's daughter after his wife's death.
This niece also married young, and the climax was
put to a long series of family bereavements by the
death of husband and wife, drowned on the passage
out to India. One little girl of theirs was left
behind in England. Mrs. Charles A adopted
her orphan grandniece, but insisted on marking the
interval between the two generations by teaching
the child (who was by this time about ten) to call
her Granny instead of Aunt. Silver hairs and some
of the sererlity of beautiful old age joined with the
name to make young and old accept the little fiction
which warranted her grand-maternal airs.
There was a pause as I did not respond to
Johnny's ingenious iappeal, broken presently by
Hester. "Johnny is rather rude, Cousin Philip;
but I think girls, at all events, want to be told " —
and then she stopped ; and the Granny said, ^' Both
bbys and womert have a notion, which they are too
shy to express, that life isn't all learning arid doing.
Its happiness depends on our pleasures and what we
call our '' feelings,' and this is the terra incognita of
which they think a guide, philosopher and friend
SAT EST VIXISSE. 291
should give them news before they embark towards
I said, "If talk about what people ought to do
is wearisome, what words will you find to describe
the frigid dreariness of talk about w^hat people
ought to feel? Besides, most people admit that
they don't do all they ought, but who is willing to
admit that his own natural feelings can be in the
wrong ? "
"At least," said Hester, " it doesn't make much
difference whether one ought to have felt this and
that or no, so long as one has felt or feels it still.
We can't help ourselves ; perhaps we oughtn't to
have eaten ginger ; but if we have, w^hat is the sense
of saying we oughtn't to feel it hot in the mouth, or
of telling us to try and believe we don't ? "
" The right and wTong of feelings," I replied, " if
there is such a thing, must answer to health and
disease in tastes. One's moral stomach, for exam-
ple, must be out of order if the sweets of natural
affection have an acrid taste. Sometimes the desires
which it is natural and wholesome to indulge may
not be gratified, but the world, not we, is to blame
for that. It is a suicidal kind of adaptation which
would try to sti'angle such desires because they la}'
us open to fresh risks of disappointment. We shall
not mend the world by trying, chameleon-wise, tp
take the color of its blemishes. Whatever our
desires may be, now and again they will sufter dis-
292 SAT EST VIXISSE.
appointment ; but those who have the courage to
endure the still-recurring disappointments without
hardening in resistance will not always desire in
vain."
" That," said Hester, " is just what we were ask-
ing. Looking dispassionately at the experience of
most other people — (why should we expect to be
wiser than they.^) — what do the results of their
lives enable us to predict about our own ? "
" It is as a generalization from experience that I
offer you the opinion that generalities will give
you little help. Every passage of individual ex-
perience is sut similis^ and the theoretical solution
of a difficulty is seldom of much practical avail,
even when we know it. While the feelings are
entangled in the act of forming effective premisses,
what satisfaction can be derived from guessing at
the ultimate result, which most probably will follow
after the intervention of other factors as yet unfelt }
People are seldom left to reason themselves out of
a difficulty with unchanged feelings."
" But," said the Granny, by way of guidance,
" do their feelings change in the direction needed
for their satisfaction? Do people as a rule get
what they want, late if not soon "^ Do they, at least,
afj the Spanish proverb advises, and Johnny reluct-
antly suspects, do they end by wanting what they can
g'^t, since they cannot get what they wanted t "
The Master had joined us unobserved, and he
SAT EST VIXISSE. 293
answered, "Life modifies their wants more than
their gettings ; but you young people can't be ex-
pected to understand beforehand how tastes give
way to habit as the years go on. There is no end
to a boy's difficulties because misfortunes and dis-
contents that are confronted a priori leave no
motives behind them. Real adventures, whether
they turn out well or ill, leave a legacy of incentives
both to action and forbearance ; and in the long-run
men more often suffer from the presence of induce-
ments to do wrong than from the absence of induce-
ments to do right, or to do anything at all."
" And this being so ?" said the Granny.
The Master and she have a way of continuing
each other's sentences, and he continued, " This
being so, it is not unreasonable for the question
to state itself a priori in 3'outh : What clue should
a man grasp beforehand to sei*\"e as a guide when
overmastering passion threatens to sweep him off
the beaten track "^ "
"What, indeed?" said Johnny, w^ho adopts a
fresh creed every vacation and for the moment calls
himself an agnostic.
"Does it seem a trifling answer to say that in
hours of passionate trial or temptation a man can
have no better help than his own past.^ Every
generous feeling that has not been crushed, every
wholesome impulse that has been followed, eveiy
just perception, every habit of unselfish action,
294 SAT EST VIXISSE.
will be present in the background to guide or to
restrain. It is too late, when the storm has burst,
to provide our craft with rigging fit to \veather it ;
but we may find a purpose for the years that oppress
us by their dull calm if we elect to spend them in
laying up stores of strength and wisdom and emo-
tional prejudices of a goodly human kind, whereby,
if need arises, we may be able to resist hereafter
the gusts of passion that might else bear us out of
the straightforward chosen course."
" Let an old wom.an have her turn at preaching,"
said the Granny, with the discriminating smile that
often heralds a bit of casuistic subtlety. " In
looking forward for one's self it may be well to say,
' It will be my own fault, the outcome of my ill-
spent days, if my strength fails me in a time of
trial ;' but we all do fail again and again in our
least endeavors, and none of us, therefore, can sit
in judgment on another. Who can say but what
we should have failed yet more utterly under the
same temptation ? The one favor we have a right
to show ourselves, the one concession we need not
grudge to the ineradicable instinct of self-esteem, is
to view our own failures with the largest measure
of intolerance. Other people fail, no doubt — it is
likely enough they should — but how come we of
all men thus to disappoint our own reasonable ex-
pectations of something better than common failure
from the cherished self? "
SAT EST VIXISSE. 295
" One topic of consolation may emerge," I said,
*'from the midst of failure. It is a form of good
fortune not to have been the vehicle of evil, and as
one's experience of the number of possible calami-
ties increases, one's appreciation of the felicity
involved in escaping them Increases too. Some
people count among their mercies the crimes they
have not been tempted to commit."
She continued: " I know it is a doubtful conso-
lation to say, either of a real trouble or of one's
ow^n wickedness, only that ' it might have been
worse.' As a plea for contentment, this argument
is about on a par with the other favorite suggestion,
' It is a hard case, but that of somebody else is
■ harder.' That some one else Is worse off than I am
can hardly be an alleviation of my trouble — an
aggravation rather. It is Mephistopheles who sneers
the consolation, ' Sie ist die Erste nicht.' "
" But there are two parts in our indignation
against what Is wrong In the world," said the
Master, " and they have a different origin. There
is the spontaneous revolt of our feeling and the
deliberate disapproval of our judgment. As a phi-
losopher, I have no more reason to denounce the
order of creation because I happen to be one of its
victims than because Nokes or Styles are victims.
As a man, my denunciations of the wrongs of Nokes
or Styles usually borrow half their fervor from the
resemblance between their wrongs and mine, and
296 SAT EST VIXISSE.
half the remainder from my imagination of their
wrongs as so nearly within the range of possible
contingencies for myself as to stir the sympathetic
wrath which is the earliest phase of fellow-feeling.
But supposing, as is the case with most young
people, I have little personal knowledge of my
fellow-sufferers, and an absorbing sense of the
wrong or hardship of my own lot, ought I to find
any motive for fortitude and patience in the abstract
certainty that I have fellow-sufferers I do not
know ? "
" I don't," observ^ed Johnny ; and we smiled par-
enthetically at the notion of the cheerfully argu-
mentative youth being claimed as the fellow of any
sufferer.
"Still, if it were not indiscreet," — and Hester
leant back in her chair with wondering, interroga-
tive glances.
" Well ? " said the Master as she paused.
She laughed, and tried more than once before
arriving at her questi(3n.
"I should like to know, supposing you do get the
thing of things you wished for, the very best pleas-
ure of one's dreams, or rather —
A pleasure as much better than one's dreams
As happiness than any longing seems —
What comes after that? If I am walking about
in and out of doors all day, I feel neither cold nor
SAT EST VIXISSE. 297
heat ; but if I've been for a sharp walk in the frost
or sitting over a snug fire, I am very critical of the
temperature of the room one goes into next."
A " Well bowled !" from Johnny was the only
immediate response.
I feared lest the accidental silence might give the
question the effect, or rather the appearance, of in-
discretion, and stumbled to the rescue with a story.
Hester should have die verdict of a better authority
than any one present. I named a great poet, who
was popular and successful besides ; he was not
supposed to have passed an entirely tranquil youth,
but he was happily married long ago, and has never
ceased to be in love with his wife. He was pre-
vailed upon by an undergraduate son to assist at
a college " wine ; " the young fellows were excited
over the honor done them, and talked fast and furi-
ously, each one wishing to have the poet's verdict
on the wildest of his pet beliefs. At last we got
to the originals of Goethe's " West-ostlicher Divan,"
and thence to the extravagances of passion and the
superstitious reaction of belief in Nemesis and the
" Ring of Polykrates."
The poet said there was wisdom in all supersti-
tion, and most of all in this. He rose from his chair,
towering like a giant in the low room, and said ;
" If any of you live to be as happy as I hope you
may, you will know what it is to feel that you must
ransom your treasure of delight, or cold fate will
298 SA T EST VIXISSE.
sweep it from your arms. It is a strange feeling :
one does not dream of earning one's good luck —
that is sweet beyond the imagination of desert — but
one has an impulse to a|one, to pay back, it matters
not to whom, something of the undeserved treasures
of delight which have fallen to our lot from heaven.
Not being a moral philosopher, only a poor poet,"
he w^ent on, "I am not obliged to find a logical
reason why I should cherish this superstition, but a
scientific friend offered me gratis an explanation
that will pass muster if you want one.
" However fortunate we may be, the supreme
ecstasy of fruition cannot last at its intensest point
for ever : when the climax is reached, we must
either stop short or risk descent ; and there are mo-
ments after which even common happiness seems a
cruel falling short. We cannot prolong the ecstasy ;
we cannot bear to feel ourselves falling short of
what has been. There is but one way to propitiate
Nemesis and avoid the judgment of the gods — to
make ourselves their executioner, and not tempt
them with prayers for the mortal draught of unend-
ing joy. You were speaking of the Persian poet's
intoxication : whether he is drunk with wine, or
love, or piety, makes little odds ; my worship of
Nemesis is but a practical expression of Byron's
bugbear, ' Sermons and soda-water the day after.'
Drink your deepest, drink till you have drained
creation's sweetest goblet dry, then do not hold it
SAT EST VJXISSE. 299
out to be filled again from heaven, but take off your
coat and go out to ^^lough ; work, endure, open
your eyes to the unendurable suffering and the un-
rewarded labor at your very door, and only when
you have paid your tribute to the jealous goddesses
whose snares are set for presumptuous feet, only
then dare to desire, if it may be, the renewal of.
your bliss. So, and only so, can one who has it in
him to be ravenous escape the curse of greed, which
is to enjoy the less the more there is given it to
enjoy.
" One grows thirsty preaching ; " — the poet held
out a goblet of heroic proportions, and the Amphi-
tryon of the evening drew the cork of his last bottle
of champagne. The poet raised the glass with an
inch of foam upon the surface and drank — drank
all the foam and three quarters of the wine — to
Temperance and Nemesis. " A perfect draught,"
he said with a sigh, and added meditatively, *' but
a mouthful more or less would have been a mis-
take."
He balanced the glass with an absent air bet^veen
his fingers, till they clenched upon it and snapped
the slender stem, letting the bow^l fall and the wine
spill where it would. All whose glasses were not
empty followed his example (though some, I fancy,
cut their fingers) , shouting, ' ' A libation to Nem-
esis ! "
Amphitiyon's papa thought the bill for broken
300 SAT BST VIXISSE.
glass and wine-stained carpets immoderate, but was
propitiated by the gift of a Venetian goblet, with
a silver sheath holding the two parts of a snapped
stem together. On the sheath was engraved, *' To
Nemesis and Sophrosyne."
After a whispered consultation with her school-
boy ally, Hester observed that the ancient Greeks had
made a mistake about the gender of the latter noun.
The Master remonstrated: "Hester wishes to
keep us to her point, but I will not be allured
from mine. If it is well to indulge moderately in
the taste of supreme felicity, a fortiori it must be
foolish to fill our pipe with the consciousness of
woe and smoke that sour opium to excess. Besides,
unless we carry off this pipe of dispeace into a
desert, we find always so much of good and bad
still in the world outside our woes, that we end by
feeling it to be reasonable to give them less than all
our thoughts. It is while we have no feelings but
our own to think about that we think our feelings
afford a rational base for conclusions about the na-
ture and worth of life."
" Propositions of this kind," I said, " may be
understood as soon as the reasoning powers are
awake, but only exceptional natures are born with
the temper that leads some persons in each genera-
tion to find out their truth afresh, and to turn the
insignificant phrases into a fact of living and fruitful
experience." ^
SAT EST VIXISSB. 2>^l
" There are some truths, I grant," said the Mas-
ter, "that it seems ahnost impossible to convey in
words except to those who know them ah'eady, and
yet it is worth while to make the attempt. The state-
ment that passes half-understood from the unready
mind may yet serve as a finger-post pointing towards
the after experience which is the more easily under-
stood because of the premature explanation of it that
was not understood at all. We cannot help our
juniors to know, of their own knowledge, Avhat the
lapse of time ^vill show" to them as it has to us, but
we may prevail on them so far as to rank the ful-
filment of our prophecies among the category of
possibilities, which of itself is a step, sometimes
the first and costliest, towards understanding and
belief.
" And the dull chorus of graybeards all agree in
prophesying your life will be what you yourself
choose and will to make it — subject to the real co7t'
ditions. Subject to the conditions in which you
find yourself, and can only modify v/ithin limits,
there is no limit to your power of living the best
possible life — there is no limit but your own fool-
ish choice and feeble will ; and if you have wit and
strength to see the folly and foolishness behind you,
there need be no limit to your hope and purpose of
escaping even yet from their dominion. Make to
yourself friends of all the powers of righteousness,
and study as a science or an art the art of scientifi-
302 SAT EST VIXISSE.
cally circumventing your own base propensities.
The largest ambitions are a safeguard against ennui^
and the least good habit against sudden failures."
Hester said, coloring slightly as she ended: "Is
there any ambition without arrogance ? Too arro-
gant good intentions are apt to form no other habits
save that of falling short of them."
The Granny received the observation with a smile
of recognition, and added that St. Theresa took a
vow of perfectness from which she had to be ab-
solved because her director had not time to tell her
always (perhaps he did not know) which of two
courses her vow prescribed.
" It was hard upon the saint," our friend con-
tinued, " and it is hard upon us sinners to know too
much of human nature to dare to wish to inherit her
ambition ; but I think there is this reward in store
for modest and feasible good-behavior — to wit, a
growing sense of the attractiveness of the saint's
ideal. Surely, in these days of world-weariness, no
revelation can be more welcome than that of a goal
which attracts the more the longer we pursue,
which appears in all its divine beauty the more
plainly to our eyes as they learn to measure the im-
passable and infinite abyss across which its radiance
shines as we worship afar off'. The best possible
life, of which we spoke, is the one that enjoys
most largely the beatific vision of an ever-impossible
Better. ~
SAT EST VIXISSE. 303
*' Many have asked, ' Is there a good on earth to
live for ? ' but no one ever questioned v^hether the
best good of earth was good, if so be it might be
had. Earth's happiest best is reaHzed, as the
happiest among us know, in the 'eternal marriage
of love and duty,' when the love of one and the
service of many go hand in hand — when choice and
obligation point one way, and the whole soul exults
in glad obedience to their joint sweet urging — when
the devotion of heart and will is such as to make
even the answer of love and praise sound far away,
faint and sweet, like the memory of over-paid
desert. Such a moment translated beyond the
grave inspires the Christian text, ' Well done, good
and faithful servant ; enter thou into the joy of thy
Lord.' I do not think it is given us to imagine
any brighter crown of life than this, or indeed any
other crown for the whole of life. Love alone,
victory or fame — each counts for much, but which
alone can so fulfil the widespread cravings of the
human heart as not to leave one aching blank, w^ith
power in its season to poison all the rest that is
enjoyed }
''That is the best ; and for the man who has done
nothing worse than fail innocently — and the worst
luck forces on us no worse fate than this — who has
failed to do great deeds, and win a greater love (and
for each one the love and deeds are great which are
great enough to content his own desire) , for such
304 SAT EST VIXISSE.
there is nothing worse in store than this, to know
that there are others in the world better off than
he. There Is one thing I should have liked to see
before I died. I sometimes wished to try and
hasten the good day, but I was not the chosen-
prophet ; yet let it be remembered of me, when he
comes and others see it, that I said the day of his
coming was near. I speak of a day when all my
understanding friends will dare to join together In
uttering, one with another, one to another, their
deepest feelings and beliefs concerning man's life,
the place of our life in the Infinite universe, and
the answer of the human soul to the omnipotent
urgency of the infinite : and wdien once more deep
faith will dare to trust Itself to act.
" I write my own epitaph. Sat est vixisse^ with-
out mourning because I shall not see that day,
because I see so clearly that It must come — a day
when my friends' jarring paradoxes and the demands
of Incompatible prejudices shall crystallize Into a
broader, more luminous, more stirring whole, accep-
table alike to all the many, growing day by day
more, to whom human life is sacred, and who are
willing to accept for their own life the rule, which
is also a religion, of tender reverence for human
sorrow, glad sympathy with human joy, and, as the
source w^hich feeds all wholesome natural life with
its choicest treasures of emotion, the stress of active
SAT EST VIXISSE. 305
energy, the steady exercise of eveiy power of mind
and will to order and create.
" We have to make the world in which we live
and act, in which our fellows have to find the ob-
jects of their love, in which their love may join
with ours in the joyous passion of unwounded sym-
pathy. In so far as I have taken part in the work
and shared the feelings of those who strive crea-
tively after a better order, in so far as my mind has
rested, filled and satisfied with the vision of its not
impossible avatar, in so far I am prepared to fall
asleep with the grateful sigh that ends a day of
pleasant labor, with the absolute content that is as
free from desire as from regret. I have lived !
Sat est vixisse.
" Life's duties leave us content to live, its pains
and pleasures content not to live for ever."
And the white-haired young widow added :
*' More than content to live and die if our dearest
one may live for ever in the changeless memories
of almighty love."
NOVELS BY
THE DUCHESS,
AU of wliich. are now issued in Lovell's Library, in
handsome 12mo form, for
VIZ :
Portia, or By Passions Rocked^ "
Phyllis,
Molly Bawn,
Airy Fairy Lillian,
Mrs. Geoffrey, Etc., Etc.
The works by The L>uchess have passed, and far passed, all
competitors in the race for popularity and admirers. Editions
after editions have rapidly succeeded each other, both in England
and this Country, and it is an interesting fact (to the publishers)
to know that the supply does not equal the demand. Select and
read any one of the above, and you will not be happy till you have
read them all. It would be of little use giving extracts from the
thousands of eulogistic press criticisms. Your only plan is to
buy one, and be convinced that the Novels by The Duchess are
the most intensely interesting light reading written for many a
year.
For sale by all booksellers and newsdealers, or sent postage pa\d
on receipt of price, by the publishers.
JOHN W. LOVELT. CO.,
14 AND 16 Vesey Street,
New Yokk.
J. Feoimore Cooper's IVIasterpieces,
E SPY.
The Last of the Mohicans.
1 Yo}., 12mo. Paper Covers, 50c. Cloth, Gold and Clack, flOO.
These books are unabridged, and printed on heavy white paper
from large, new type.
What Daniel Webster said of these Books: — "The enduring
monuments of J. Fenimore Cooper are his works. While the love
of country continues to prevail, his memory will exi'^t in the hearts
of the people. So truly patriotic and Atneri an throughout, they
should find a place in eyerj American's library."
_ W. H, Prescott, the great historian, said;— '-In his produc-
tions every American must take an honest pride.'''
Another great historian, George Bancroft, writes: — "His
surpassing ability has made his own nnme and the names of the
creations of his fancy 'household words' throughout the civilized
world."
Washington Irving left on record:— "Cooper emphaticary
belongs to the nation. He has left a space in our literature which
will not be easily supplied."
Wm. C. Bryant, the poet and philosopher, says:— "He wrote for
mankind at large; hence it, is that he has earned a fame wider than
any author of modern limes. The creations of his geruus sha'i
survive through centuries to come, and only perish with oui
language."
JOHN W. LOVELL CO., Pablisliers,
14 &16 Vesey St., New York.
many a family has been raised by the genuine philantrophy of
modem progress and of modern opportunities. But ma^y people do
not avail of them. They jog along in their old ways until they are
stuck fast m a mire of hopeless dirt. Friends desert them, for they
have alreaay deserted themselves by neglecting their own beet interests
Out ot the dirt of latchen, or hall or parlor, any house can be quickly
brought by the use of Sapolio which is sold by all grocers at 10c. a cake
CastorI
mi^lQ]
^^!^^^^^^$^
Infants and Children.
*'Castoria is so well adap-
ted to children that I recommend
it as superior to any prescription
known to me."
H. A. Archer, M.D.,
111 So. Oxford St.,
Brooklyn, N. Y.
The Centaur Company, 182 Fulton St., K Y.
Send to Centaur Company for Atlas, Almanac and Receipt Book.
€a§toria cures Colic, Consti-
pation, Sour Stomach, Diarrhoea,
Eructation, Kills Worms, gives
sleep, and promotes digestion.
Without injurious medication.
THE BEST
WASHING COMPOUND
EVER INVENTED.
No Lady, Married oi*
Sing^le, Rich or Poor,
Housekeeping^ or Board*
ing, will be without it
after testing its utility^
Sold by all first-class
Grocers* but beware o^
worthless imitations.
THE CELtB RATED
SOBMEB
Grand, Sqtiare and Upright
PIANOFORTES.
The demands now made by an educated musical public are so exaeting that yery few
Pianoforte Manufacturers can produce fnstruments that will stand the test which merit
requires. SOHMER & CO., as Manufacturers, rank amongst these chosen few, who are
acknowledged to be makers of standard instruments. In these days, when Manufacturers
urge the low price of their wares rather than their superior quality as an inducement to
purchase, it may not be amiss to suggest that, in a Piano, quality and price are too in-
separably joined to expect the one without the other.
Every Piano ought to be judged as to the quality of its tone, its touch, and its work-
manship; if any one of these is wanting in excellence, however good the others may be,
the instrument will be imperfect. It is the combination of these qualities in the highest
degree that constitutes the perfect Piano, and it is this combination that has given the
" SOHMER " its honorable position with the trade and the public.
Receiyed First Prize Centennial Exhibition, Philadelphia, 1876.
Received First Prize at Exhibition, Montreal, Canada, 1881 & 1882.
SOHMER & CO., Manufacturers, **
^7 S 4149-155 E. 14tli St., New York.
H*
■"oo^
■'^^ ; % ^'
•^^ v""
.0 c
o 0^
.^^'
■^A V*
:i
■&'■
<*-.
^t?..
.0 c
>. c'^'
^^%^
'"'^^- .^v*''
>-\,,
% %
s^ -^^